Parliament attack convict Afzal Guru was hanged at 8 am in Delhi's Tihar
Jail on Saturday after President Pranab Mukherjee had rejected his mercy
petition on February 3. Afzal Guru was awarded death sentence by a Delhi court
on December 18, 2002 after being convicted of conspiracy to attack Parliament
on December 13, 2001.
The death sentence was upheld by Delhi High Court on October 29, 2003
and finally his appeal was rejected by the Supreme Court two years later on
August 4, 2005.
Below is the full text of the Supreme Court judgement
CASE NO.: Appeal (crl.) 373-375 of 2004 PETITIONER: STATE (N.C.T. OF
DELHI)
RESPONDENT: NAVJOT SANDHU@ AFSAN GURU
DATE OF JUDGMENT: 04/08/2005
BENCH: P. VENKATARAMA REDDI & P.P. NAOLEKAR
JUDGMENT:
JUDGMENT WITH
CRIMINAL APPEAL Nos. 376-378 OF 2004 STATE (N.C.T. OF DELHI)
####BODY####5 APPELLANT
VERSUS SYED ABDUL REHMAN GILANI ####BODY####5 RESPONDENT CRIMINAL APPEAL
Nos. 379-380 OF 2004 SHAUKAT HUSSAIN GURU ####BODY####5 APPELLANT
VERSUS STATE (N.C.T. OF DELHI) ####BODY####5 RESPONDENT CRIMINAL APPEAL
NO. 381 OF 2004 MOHD. AFZAL ####BODY####5 APPELLANT
VERSUS
STATE (N.C.T. OF DELHI)
P. VENKATARAMA REDDI, J.
1. The genesis of this case lies in a macabre incident that took place
close to the noon time on 13th December, 2001 in which five heavily armed
persons practically stormed the Parliament House complex and inflicted heavy
casualties on the security men on duty. This unprecedented event bewildered the
entire nation and sent shock waves across the globe. In the gun battle that
lasted for 30 minutes or so, these five terrorists who tried to gain entry into
the Parliament when it was in session, were killed. Nine persons including
eight security personnel and one gardener succumbed to the bullets of the
terrorists and 16 persons including 13 security men received injuries. The five
terrorists were ultimately killed and their abortive attempt to lay a seize of
the Parliament House thus came to an end, triggering off extensive and
effective investigations spread over a short span of 17 days which revealed the
possible involvement of the four accused persons who are either appellants or
respondents herein and some other proclaimed offenders said to be the leaders
of the banned militant organization known as "Jaish-E-Mohammed".
After the conclusion of investigation, the investigating agency filed the
report under Section 173 Cr.P.C. against the four accused persons on 14.5.2002.
Charges were framed under various sections of Indian Penal Code (for short
'IPC'), the Prevention of Terrorism Act, 2002 (hereinafter referred to as
'POTA') and the Explosive Substances Act by the designated Court. The
designated Special Court presided over by Shri S.N. Dhingra tried the accused
on the charges and the trial concluded within a record period of about six
months. 80 witnesses
were examined for the prosecution and 10 witnesses were examined on
behalf of the accused S.A.R. Gilani. Plethora of documents (about 330 in
number) were exhibited. The three accused, namely, Mohd. Afzal, Shaukat Hussain
Guru and S.A.R. Gilani were convicted for the offences under Sections 121,
121A, 122, Section 120B read with Sections 302 & 307 read with Section 120-
B IPC, sub-Sections (2), (3) & (5) of Section 3 and Section 4(b) of POTA
and Sections 3 & 4 of Explosive Substances Act. The accused 1 & 2 were
also convicted under Section 3(4) of POTA. Accused No.4 namely Navjot Sandhu @
Afsan Guru was acquitted of all the charges except the one under Section 123
IPC for which she was convicted and sentenced to undergo R.I. for five years
and to pay fine. Death sentences were imposed on the other three accused for
the offence under Section 302 read with Section 120-B IPC (it would be more
appropriate to say7 Section 120-B read with Section 302 IPC) and Section 3(2) of
POTA. They were also sentenced to life imprisonment on as many as eight counts
under the provisions of IPC, POTA and Explosive Substances Act in addition to
varying amounts of fine. The amount of Rs.10 lakhs, which was recovered from
the possession of two of the accused, namely, Mohd. Afzal and Shaukat Hussain,
was forfeited to the State under Section 6 of the POTA.
2. In conformity with the provisions of Cr.P.C. the designated Judge
submitted the record of the case to the High Court of Delhi for confirmation of
death sentence imposed on the three accused. Each of the four accused filed
appeals against the verdict of the learned designated Judge. The State also
filed an appeal against the judgment of the designated Judge of the Special
Court seeking enhancement of life sentence to the sentence of death in relation
to their convictions under Sections 121, 121A and 302 IPC. In addition, the
State filed an appeal against the acquittal of the 4th accused on all the
charges other than the one under Section 123 IPC. The Division Bench of High
Court, speaking through Pradeep Nandrajog, J. by a well considered judgment
pronounced on 29.10.2003 dismissed the appeals of Mohd. Afzal and Shaukat
Hussain Guru and confirmed the death sentence imposed on them. The High Court
allowed the appeal of the State in regard to sentence under Section 121 IPC and
awarded them death sentence under that Section also. The High Court allowed the
appeals of S.A.R. Gilani and Navjot Sandhu @ Afsan Guru and acquitted them of
all charges. This judgment of the High Court has given rise to these seven
appeals7two appeals preferred by Shaukat Hussain Guru and one appeal preferred
by Mohd. Afzal and four appeals preferred by the State/Government of National
Capital Territory of Delhi against the acquittal of S.A.R. Gilani and Navjot
Sandhu.
It may be mentioned that the accused Mohd. Afzal and Shaukat Hussain
Guru are related, being cousins. The 4th accused Navjot Sandhu @ Afsan Guru is
the wife of Shaukat Hussain. The third accused S.A.R. Gilani is a teacher in
Arabic in Delhi University. It is he who officiated the marriage ceremony of
Shaukat Hussain Guru and Navjot Sandhu who at the time of marriage converted
herself to Islam.
3.(i) Now, let us make a brief survey of the incident and the investigation
that followed, which led to the filing of the charge-sheet, as apparent from
the material on record.
(ii) There is practically no dispute in regard to the details of actual
incident, the identification of the deceased terrorists and the recoveries and
other investigations made at the spot.
(iii) Five heavily armed persons entered the Parliament House complex in
a white Ambassador Car. The said five persons (hereinafter referred to as the
'slain' or 'deceased terrorists') were heavily armed with automatic assault
rifles, pistols, hand and rifle grenades, electronic detonators, spare
ammunition, explosives in the form of improvised explosive devices viz., tiffin
bombs and a sophisticated bomb in a container in the boot of the car made with
enormous quantity of ammonium nitrate. The High Court observed: "The fire
power was awesome7enough to engage a battalion7and had the attack succeeded,
the entire building with all inside would have perished."
(iv) It was a fortuitous circumstance that the Vice President's carcade,
which was awaiting departure from Gate No.11 was blocking the circular road
outside the Parliament building, with the result the deceased terrorists were
unable to get free and easy access to the Parliament House building. The attack
was foiled due to the immediate reaction of the security personnel present at
the spot and complex. There was a fierce gun-battle lasting for
nearly 30 minutes. As mentioned earlier, nine persons including eight
security personnel and one gardener lost their lives in the attack and 16
persons including 13 security personnel, received injuries. The five assailants
were killed.
(v) From the evidence of PW5 who was the ASI in-charge of Escort-I
vehicle of the Vice-President, we get the details of the origin of the incident.
He stated that at about 11.30 a.m. one white Ambassador car having red light
entered the Parliament complex and came to the point where the carcade of the
Vice-President was waiting near Gate No.11. Since the escort vehicle was
blocking the way, the car turned towards left. He got suspicious and ordered
the vehicle to stop. Then, the driver of the Ambassador car reversed the
vehicle and while doing so struck the rear side of the car of the
Vice-President. When the car was about to move away, he and the driver of the
Vice- President's car ran towards the car and caught hold of the collar of the
driver.
As he was trying to drive away, PW5 took out his revolver. At that
juncture, the five persons in the car got out of it and quickly started laying
wires and detonators. Then PW5 fired a shot, which struck on the leg of one of
the terrorists. The terrorist also returned the fire as a result of which he
received a bullet injury on his right thigh. There was further exchange of
fire. The evidence of other witnesses reveal that there was hectic movement of
the terrorists from gate to gate within the complex firing at the security men
on duty and the latter returning the fire.
(vi) The Station House Officer of Parliament Street Police Station, Shri
G.L. Mehta (PW1) along with his team of police personnel reached the spot after
receiving a wireless message. By that time, the firing spree was over. PW1
cordoned off the area. He found one deceased terrorist lying opposite Gate No.1
of the Parliament building, one deceased terrorist at the porch of Gate No.5
and three deceased terrorists lying in the porch of Gate No.9. The Bomb
Disposal Squad of NSG, a photographer and a crime team were summoned to the
spot. PW1 then deputed three Sub-Inspectors (PWs2 to 4) to conduct investigation
at the three gates. PW1 then examined the spot of occurrence, prepared a rough
sketch of the scene of occurrence and seized various articles including arms
and ammunition, live and empty cartridges and the car and the documents found
therein. Blood samples were also lifted from various spots. The photographs of
the five slain terrorists were caused to be taken. Then, he sent the dead
bodies to the mortuary in the hospital for postmortem.
(vii) After the Bomb Disposal Squad had rendered the area safe and his
preliminary observations were over, PW1 recorded the statement of S.I. Sham
Singh (PW55) who was in the security team of Vice-President. On the basis of
this statement, 'Rukka' (Ext.PW1/1) was prepared and PW1 despatched the same to
the police station at about 5 p.m. This formed the basis for registration of
First Information Report. The FIR was registered for offences under Sections
121, 121A, 122, 124, 120-B, 186, 332, 353, 302, 307 IPC, Sections 3, 4 & 5
of the Explosive Substances Act and Sections 25 & 27 of the Arms Act by the
Head Constable (PW14) of the Parliament Street Police Station. The copy of FIR
was sent to the Court on the same day, as seen from the endorsement on the
document (PW 14/1). The further investigation was, taken up by the special cell
of Delhi Police.
(viii) Investigations conducted by PW1 and his team of officers led to
the recovery and seizure of the following articles inter alia: A white
ambassador car, DL3CJ1527, with a VIP red light. The car had a sticker of the Home
Ministry (subsequently found to be fake) on the windshield (Ex. PW 1/8)
containing an inscription at the rear denigrating India and reflecting a
resolve to 'destroy' it. Certain papers relating to the car were found inside
the car.
Six fake identity cards purportedly issued by Xansa Websity, 37,
Bungalow Road, New Delhi to different students with their address as 120-A,
Adarsh Nagar, Delhi and the telephone number as 9811489429. These identity
cards were in the names of Anil Kumar, Raju Lal, Sunil Verma, Sanjay Koul,
Rohail Sharma and Rohail Ali Shah (which were subsequently found to be fake
names of the deceased terrorists).
One fake identity card of Cybertech Computer Hardware Solutions in the
name of Ashiq Hussain which was being carried by the deceased terrorist
Mohammed.
Two slips of paper bearing five domestic mobile phone numbers, which
were related to the instruments found on the deceased terrorists and two UAE
numbers. Three SIM cards corresponding to the mobile phone numbers noted on the
slips were found inside the aforementioned three instruments7Ext. P28, P37
& P27. In addition, three other SIM cards were recovered from the purse of
the deceased terrorist Mohammad at Gate No.1.
One sheet of paper on which the topographical details regarding the
Parliament House building and the compound were handwritten. 4.(i) So far,
about the incident and the preliminary investigations at the scene of
occurrence regarding which there is practically no dispute. We shall now
narrate briefly the further factual details as unfolded by the prosecution:
(ii) While investigations were on at the spot, PW20 came to the Parliament
Complex and met PW1. PW20 provided the first leads to the investigating
officials by informing PW1 that he had sold the Ambassador car used in the
attack (DL 3C J 1527) on 11.12.2001. He had come to the spot after seeing the
said car on the television screen. PW20 had brought with him a delivery receipt
dated 11.12.2001, photocopy of the identity card of one Ashiq Hussain etc. PW20
identified the deceased terrorist (Mohammad) at Gate No.1 as being the said
Ashiq Hussain who had purchased the car.
(iii) Inspector Mohan Chand Sharma of special cell7PW66 undertook the
investigations pertaining to the mobile phones. Phone call details were
obtained and analysed from the respective cellular mobile service providers.
Analysis of the call records indicated that the number 9811489429 which was
found on the I.D. cards, (subsequently discovered to be that of the accused
Afzal) appeared to be integrally connected with the deceased terrorists and
this number had been in frequent contact with the cell phone No. 9810693456
(recovered from the deceased terrorist Mohammad at Gate No.1) continuously from
28.11.2001 till the date of the attack. It was further revealed that this
number of Afzal, namely, 9811489429 was in contact with the above cell phone of
Mohammad, just before the incident i.e. at 10.40 a.m., 11.04 a.m. and 11.22
a.m. It was also ascertained that the said number of Afzal was activated only
on 6.11.2001 close to the attack.
Further analysis of the cell phone call records showed that another cell
phone number i.e. 9811573506 (subsequently discovered to be that of Shaukat and
recovered from the 4th accused Afsan Guru) appeared to be in close contact with
Afzal's number namely 9811489429 and these numbers were in contact with each
other a few minutes before the attack on the Parliament commenced. It was also
found that the said number of Shaukat was activated only on 7.12.2001 just a
week prior to the attack. An analysis of the call records relating to Shaukat's
mobile phone further revealed that soon after the attack i.e at 12.12 hours,
there was a call from Shaukat's number to the cell phone number 9810081228
(subsequently discovered to be that of SAR Gilani) and there was a call from
Gilani's number to Shaukat's number 10 minutes later. Moreover, it was
ascertained that Gilani's number was in constant touch with the other two
accused namely Shaukat and Afzal. It transpired that Afzal's cell phone bearing
number 9811489429 was reactivated on 7.12.2001 and the first call was from
Gilani's number.
With the recoveries of the cell phones and SIM cards and on an analysis
of the details of phone numbers noted on the slips of papers in the light of
the call records, the investigation narrowed down to three numbers, namely,
9811489429, 9811573506 and 9810081228 which belonged to Afzal, Shaukat and
Gilani respectively. It was also found that the first two numbers were cash
cards and hence the details regarding their ownership were not available.
However, as regards 9810081228, the information was received from the service
provider (AIRTEL) that SAR Gilani with the residential address 535, Dr.
Mukherjee Nagar, Delhi was the regular subscriber.
PW66 then took steps on December 13th for obtaining permission from the
Joint Director, I.B. as per the requirements of Indian Telegraph Act for
keeping surveillance and tapping of the mobile phone Nos.9811489429, 9811573506
and 9810081228. On 14th December, at 12.52 hours, an incoming call to Gilani's
No. 9810081228 was intercepted by S.I. Harender Singh (PW70). The call was in
Kashmiri language. A Kashmiri knowing person (PW71) was requested to interpret
the call recorded on the tape. He translated the call in Hindi which was recorded
in Ext. PW66/4. That was a call from the brother of Gilani which was made from
Srinagar. On the same day, at 8.12
P.M. a call was intercepted on the number 9811573506 which disclosed
that one woman was talking in a state of panic to a male person whom she
addressed as Shaukat. This conversation was transcribed by PW70 as per PW 66/3.
The subsequent forensic analysis revealed that the male voice in the
conversation was of the accused Shaukat Hussain and that the female voice was
that of his wife7accused No.4 who was the recipient of the call. The call came
from Srinagar. Both the intercepted conversations were analysed and considered
by PW 66 (Inspector M.C. Sharma) at about 10 P.M. on 14th December. PW 66
resultantly drew an inference that the persons who were conversing on the two
mobile phones were having knowledge about the attack on Parliament and that two
persons namely, Shaukat and Chotu who were connected with the case were in
Srinagar. The calling No. 0194 492160 was sent to the Central Agency of
Srinagar Police for surveillance.
(iv) The next move was to arrest Gilani, which according to the
prosecution was at about 10 A.M. on December 15th when he was entering his
house at Mukherjee Nagar. Shri Gilani is alleged to have made disclosures to
the investigating agency, the contents of which were recorded subsequently as
Ex. PW 66/13. The disclosure statement implicated himself and the other accused
in the conspiracy to attack the Parliament. According to the prosecution, he
disclosed the facts on the basis of which further investigation was carried
out, certain recoveries were effected and discovery of facts took place. The
identity of the deceased terrorist Mohammad and others, the part played by
Shaukat and Afzal and other details are said to have been given by him.
According to the prosecution, Shri Gilani then led the Investigating Officer to
the house of Shaukat which was also located at Mukherjee Nagar.
The 4th accused Afsan Guru7the wife of Shaukat was found there with cell
phone No. 9811573506. The search of the premises resulted in the recovery of
another cell phone 9810446375 which was in operation from 2nd November to 6th
December. Accused Navjot, on interrogation, disclosed that Mohammad (deceased
terrorist) gave Rs. 10 lac and laptop computer to Shaukat and asked him to go
to Sri Nagar in the truck along with Afzal. The truck was registered in her
name. The disclosure statement of Navjot is Ex.PW66/14. According to the
prosecution, she was arrested at about 10.45 a.m. on 15th December. The truck
number given by her was flashed to Srinagar. Srinagar police was successful in
apprehending the two accused Afzal and Shaukat while they were in the truck
belonging to Navjot. On their pointing out, the laptop computer and an amount
of Rs. 10 lac were recovered from the truck by the SDPO, Srinagar (PW61). A
mobile handset without any SIM card was also found. It transpired that this
hand set was used in the operation i.e. No. 9811489429 which established
contacts with deceased terrorists minutes before the attack. Mohd. Afzal and
Shaukat Hussain, who were arrested by the Srinagar Police at about 11.45 A.M.,
were brought to Delhi in a special aircraft and were formally arrested in
Delhi. The investigation was handed over the PW76 (Inspector Gill of Special
Cell) on 16th December.
(v) It is the case of the prosecution that on interrogation, they made
disclosure statements (Ex.PW 64/1 and PW 64/2) in relation to their role in the
conspiracy. On December 16th, Afzal and Shaukat led the investigating team to
the various hideouts, viz., Indira Vihar and Gandhi Vihar where the terrorists
stayed. On the search of these places, the police recovered chemicals, prepared
explosives, detonators, gloves, mixer grinder, motor cycles7one belonging to
Shaukat and the other purchased by the deceased terrorist Mohammad from PW29
which was allegedly used for reconnaissance (reccee). On December 17th , the
investigating officer took Mohd. Afzal to the mortuary at the L.H. Medical
College Hospital where Afzal identified the bodies of the five deceased
terrorists as Mohammad (dead body found at Gate No.1), Raja, Rana, Hamza (dead
bodies found at Gate No.9) and Haider (dead body found at Gate No.5). From
December 17th to December 19th, Afzal led the police to various shops from
where the chemicals and other materials required for preparing explosives were
purchased and also the shops from where red light found on the seized car,
motor cycle, dry fruits, mobile phones etc. were purchased. From December 17th
onwards, the laptop was analysed by the IO with the assistance of an
expert7PW72. PW72 submitted a report narrating the results of his examination.
The laptop was also sent to BPR&D Office in Hyderabad and another report
from PW73 was obtained. The forensic analysis revealed that the documents found
at the spot with the deceased terrorists
including various identity cards and sticker of the Home Ministry, were
found stored in that laptop.
(vi) On 19th December, the important development was that the provisions
of Prevention of Terrorism Ordinance were invoked and the offences under the
said Ordinance were also included in the relevant columns of crime documents.
According to the prosecution, this was done after due consideration of the
material collected by then and upon getting definite information about the
involvement of a banned terrorist organization7Jaish6e- Mohammad. The
investigation was then taken over by the Assistant Commissioner of Police Shri
Rajbir Singh (PW80). He recorded a supplementary disclosure statement being
Ext. PW64/3.
(vii) On the same day i.e. 19th December, there was another crucial
development. According to the prosecution, the three accused7Afzal, Shaukat and
Gilani expressed their desire to make confessional statements before the
authorized officer.
On 20th December, PW80 made an application before the DCP (Special Cell)
(PW60) for recording the confessional statements of these three accused. PW60
gave directions to PW18 to produce the three accused at the Officers Mess,
Alipur Road, Delhi. On the next day i.e. 21st December, the accused Gilani was
first produced before PW60 at the Mess building. However, Shri Gilani refused
to make a statement before PW60 and the same was recorded by him. Thereafter,
Shaukat Hussain was produced before PW60 at 3.30 P.M. Shaukat Hussain expressed
his desire to make the confessional statement and the same was recorded by PW60
in his own handwriting which according to him was to the dictation of Shaukat.
The confessional statement recorded purportedly in compliance with Section 32
is marked as Ex. PW60/6. The other accused Afzal was also produced before PW60
at 7.10 P.M. on 21st December. After he expressed the desire to make the
confession, his statement was recorded by PW60 in his own handwriting allegedly
as per the dictation of the said accused. This is Ex.PW60/9. PW80 obtained
copies of the confessional statements in sealed envelopes. In substance, both
Afzal and Shaukat confessed having been parties to the conspiracy to launch an
attack on the Parliament House. The details of the confessions will be adverted
to later.
On 22nd December PW80 produced the accused persons before the Addl.
Chief Metropolitan Magistrate (PW63) in compliance with Section 32 of POTA. The
learned Magistrate conducted the proceedings in respect of each of the accused
persons in order to satisfy himself that the statements recorded by PW60 were
not the result of any inducements or threats. No complaint of any such threat
or inducement was made to PW63. Shaukat Hussain and SAR Gilani were remanded to
judicial custody on 22nd December itself. However, the police custody of
Mohd.Afzal was allowed for the purpose of conducting certain investigations in
the light of the supplementary disclosure statement made by him to PW80.
(viii) On 4.5.2002 sanction was accorded by the Lt. Governor of Delhi in
view of the requirements of Section 50 POTA and Section 196 Cr.P.C. Sanction
was also accorded by the Commissioner of Police on 12th April for prosecution
under Explosives Substances Act. On conclusion of the investigations, the
Investigating Agency filed the report under Section 173 Cr.P.C. against the
four accused. By the time the charge sheet was filed and the charges were
framed, the Prevention of Terrorism Act, 2002 was enacted and brought into
force with effect from 28th March, 2002. By the same Act, the Prevention of
Terrorism (2nd) Ordinance, 2001 was repealed subject to a saving provision. The
charges were framed on 4th June, 2002 and the trial before the designated Judge
commenced on 4th July. An Advocate was nominated by the court at State's
expense for providing legal assistance to the accused Afzal as he did not
engage any counsel on his own. Subsequently, the counsel was changed. Before
the trial started, an order was passed by the learned designated Judge that
certain documents viz. post-mortem reports and documents relating to recoveries
of arms, explosives etc. from the scene of occurrence shall be treated as
undisputed evidence in view of the consent given by the accused persons and
there was no need for formal proof of those documents. After the trial
commenced, an application was moved on behalf of Gilani, Shaukat and Navjot
challenging the admissibility of the intercepted conversations in evidence. The
learned Judge of the designated Court rejected their contention by his order
dated 11.7.2002. Assailing this order, the
accused moved the High Court. The High Court set-aside the order of the
designated court and allowed the applications of the accused. The SLP filed
against that order was disposed of by this Court on 9.5.2003 during the
pendency of the appeals in the High Court holding inter alia that the order
passed by designated Judge was in the nature of an interlocutory order against
which appeal or revision was barred under Section 34 POTA. Without expressing
any opinion on the merits, the parties were permitted to urge the point at
issue before the Division Bench of the High Court. The decision is reported in
(2003) 6 SCC 641. The verdict of the trial court was given on 16th and 18th
December, 2002. The details of conviction and sentences have already been
referred to. As noticed earlier, the High Court allowed the appeals of A3 and
A4 and dismissed the appeals of A1 and A2 and their death sentences were
confirmed.
5. Preliminary submissions:
(i) There are certain issues which arise at the threshold viz., validity
of sanction orders, non-addition of POTA offences at the beginning and framing
of charges which need to be addressed before we embark on a discussion of other
questions.
Sanction:
(ii) Section 50 of POTA enjoins that no Court shall take cognizance of
offences under the Act "without the previous sanction of the Central
Government or as the case may be, the State Government". So also, Section
196 of the Code of Criminal Procedure enacts a bar against taking cognizance of
any offence punishable under Chapter VI of the Indian Penal Code except with
the previous sanction of the Central Government or the State Government. Some
of the offences charged in the present case are under Chapter VI of IPC.
(iii) It is first contended by the learned senior counsel Mr. Ram
Jethmalani, that the sanctions were not given, nor signed by the competent
authority. It is submitted that in relation to the Union Territory, only
Central Government is competent. Delhi being a Union Territory known as the
National Capital Territory of Delhi with effect from the date of commencement
of the Constitution (69th Amendment Act), the Central Government alone is the
competent authority to accord sanction. In the present case, both under POTA
and Cr.P.C. sanctions have been accorded 'by order and in the name of the Lt.
Governor of the National Capital Territory of Delhi'. The Lt. Governor did not
act on behalf of the Central Government nor did he act as Administrator of U.T.
He acted as the Constitutional head of the Government of NCT of Delhi and
played the role assigned to him under Section 41 of NCT of Delhi Act, as the
authentication in the order shows. Therefore, it is submitted that the sanction
purportedly granted under Section 50 of POTA is a nullity.
(iv) We find no substance in these contentions. Section 2(h) of POTA
read with Articles 239 & 239AA of the Constitution of India furnish
complete answers to these arguments and that is what the learned senior counsel
for the State has highlighted.
'State Government' is defined in Section 2(h) of POTA and it says that
"in relation to a Union Territory, 'State Government' means the
Administrator thereof". The expression 'Administrator' finds place in
Article 239 of the Constitution of India. Article 239(1)
reads####BODY####5"Save as otherwise provided by Parliament by law, every
Union Territory shall be administered by the President acting to such an extent
as he thinks fit through an Administrator to be appointed by him with such
designation as he may specify". Article 239AA inserted by the Constitution
(69th Amendment Act, 1991) effective from 1.2.1992 lays down that from that
date, the Union Territory of Delhi shall be called the NCT of Delhi and
"the Administrator thereof appointed under Article 239 shall be designated
as the Lt. Governor." By such designation as the Lt. Governor, the constitutional
functionary contemplated by Article 239, namely, the Administrator has not lost
his status as Administrator. The designation of Administrator gets merged into
the new designation of Lt. Governor in keeping with the upgraded status of this
particular Union Territory. Thus, the Lt. Governor who continues to be the
Administrator also derives his or her authority to grant sanction under Section
50 of POTA by virtue of the legislative fiction created by Clause (h) of
Section 2 read with Article 239. The Administrator is deemed to be the State
Government for the purpose of Section 50 of POTA. In effect and in substance,
there is a clear delegation of
power statutorily conferred in favour of the Administrator (designated
as Lt. Governor) in respect of granting sanction under POTA. The fact that the
sanction order carries the designation of the Lt.Governor is of no consequence
and does not in any way impinge on the operation of Section 2(h) read with
Article 239. POTA is a Parliamentary enactment. Sub-Clause (b) of Clause 3 of
Article 239AA makes it explicit that notwithstanding the law making power
conferred on the Legislative Assembly of NCT, the Parliament retains its power
under the Constitution to make laws with respect to any matter for a Union
Territory or any part thereof. The reliance sought to be placed on Goa Sampling
Employees' Association Vs. G.S. Co. of India Pvt. Ltd. [(1985) 1 SCC 206] is
rather misconceived. That case turned on the interpretation of the expression
'appropriate Government' occurring in Section 10 of the Industrial Disputes
Act, 1947. The industrial dispute pertained to the workmen employed at Mormogao
Port which is located in the then union territory of Goa, Daman and Diu. It was
contended by the employer that the Central Government was not competent to
refer the dispute to the Tribunal for adjudication. This contention found
favour with the High Court of Bombay which held that the Administrator
appointed under Article 239 of the Constitution is the State Government for the
Union Territory of Goa and is the appropriate Government within the meaning of
Section 2(a) of the Industrial Disputes Act. The judgment of the High Court was
reversed by this Court after referring to Articles 239 and 239 A and the
provisions of the Govt. of Union Territories Act, 1963 and the definitions of
General Clauses Act and observed thus:
"On a conspectus of the relevant provisions of the Constitution and
the 1963 Act, it clearly transpires that the concept of State Government is
foreign to the administration of Union Territory and Article 239 provides that
every Union Territory is to be administered by the President. The President may
act through an administrator appointed by him. Administrator is thus the
delegate of the President. His position is wholly different from that of a
Governor of a State. Administrator can differ with his Minister and he must
then obtain the orders of the President meaning thereby of the Central
Government. Therefore, at any rate the administrator of Union Territory does
not qualify for the description of a State Government. Therefore, the Central
Government is the 'appropriate Government'.
That decision, in our view, has no relevance. This Court was not called
upon to consider a specific provision like Section 50 or Section 2(h) of POTA.
We are, therefore, of the view that by virtue of specific statutory delegation
in favour of the Administrator who is constitutionally designated as
Lt.Governor as well, the sanction accorded by the said authority is a valid
sanction under Section 50 of POTA. It is of relevance to note that the order of
sanction under POTA (Ext.P11/1) itself recites that the Lt.Governor acted in
exercise of powers conferred by Section 50 read with Clause (h) of sub-Section
(1) of Section 2 of POTA. We find on the perusal of relevant file that the
Lt.Governor saw the file and he himself approved the proposed sanction. The
grant of sanction was not an act done by a delegate of the Lt. Governor under
the Business Rules. It may be noted that the sanction file was produced before
the trial Court and was allowed to be perused by the defence counsel vide para
149 of the trial Court's judgment.
(v) As regards the sanction under Section 196 Cr.P.C. it is recited in
the sanction order (Ext.P11/2) that the Lt. Governor acted in exercise of
powers conferred by sub-Section (1) of Section 196 Cr.P.C. read with the
Government of India, Ministry of Home Affairs notification dated 20th March,
1974. Under that notification, there was delegation of powers to the Lt.
Governor to grant sanction. The said notification which finds place in the
Annexures to the written submissions made on behalf of Gilani shows that it was
issued under Article 239(1) of the Constitution enabling the Administrator of
the Union Territory to discharge powers and functions of the State Government
under the Cr.P.C. We accept the submission of the learned senior counsel for
the State that the delegation of power contained in the said notification will
continue to operate unless the Parliament by law provides otherwise. The
Government of NCT of Delhi Act, 1991 does not in any way
affect the validity of delegation contained in the Presidential
Notification issued under Article 239.
We therefore hold that the sanctions under Section 50 of POTA and
Section 196 of Cr.P.C. were accorded by a competent authority.
(vi) Touching on the validity of sanction, the next point urged by Mr.
Ram Jethmalani was that there was no proper application of mind by the
authority granting the sanction. There was no sanction for the offences under POTA
whereas sanction was given for inapplicable offences under the Indian Penal
Code. The facts constituting the offence have not been stated in the sanction
order and no evidence has been adduced to show that the competent authority
addressed himself to the relevant facts and material. The careless and inept
drafting of the sanction order has given scope for some of these comments.
Surprisingly, in the first para of the order containing recital as to the prima
facie satisfaction of the Lt.Governor the POTA offences are not specifically
mentioned. They are however embraced within the residuary terminology
"along with other offences". Instead of mentioning the POTA offences
specifically and conspicuously in the order passed under Section 50 of the
POTA, the drafter reversed that process by mentioning the POTA offences under
the residuary expression "apart from other offences". However, in our
view, this careless drafting cannot deal a fatal blow to the sanction order.
Looking at the substance and reading the entirety of the order, we come to the
irresistible conclusion that the sanction was duly given for the prosecution of
the accused for the offences under POTA after the competent authority
(Lt.Governor) had reached the satisfaction prima facie in regard to the
commission of the POTA offences as well. A specific reference to the POTA
offences mentioned in FIR is contained in the opening part of the order. The
order then contains the recital that the Lt.Governor was satisfied that the
four accused persons "have prima facie committed offences punishable under
Sections 121, 121A, 122, 124 and 120B of the IPC being involved in criminal
conspiracy to commit the said offences with intention of waging war against the
Government of India along with other offences." In the context in which
the expression 'along with other offences' occurs, it must be reasonably
construed so as to be referable to POTA offences mentioned in the opening
clause. The operative part of the order is more explicit inasmuch as the
Lt.Governor granted sanction for the prosecution of the four accused in a
competent Court "for committing the said offences punishable under
Sections 3, 4, 5, 20 & 21 of the POTA". It is pertinent to notice that
in the sanction order under Section 196 Cr.P.C. the POTA offences do not find
specific mention at all. Thus, a distinction was maintained between the
sanction under POTA and the sanction under Cr.P.C.
The other submission that the addition of the offence under Section 120B
which does not require sanction, reveals total non-application of mind, does
not appeal to us. Though the conspiracy to commit the offences punishable by
Section 121 is covered by Section 121A, probably Section 120B was also referred
to by way of abundant caution though the prosecution for the said offence does
not require sanction. At any rate, the insertion of a seemingly overlapping
provision does not and cannot affect the validity of the sanction order. Nor
can it be said that the addition of Section 124 which has really no application
to the present case by itself vitiates the sanction order. From the insertion
of one inapplicable provision, a reasonable inference cannot be drawn that
there was no application of mind by the competent authority. A meticulous and
legalistic examination as to the offences applicable and not applicable is not
what is expected at the stage of granting sanction. It was observed by the
Privy Council in Gokulchand Dwarkadas Vs. The King [AIR 1948 Privy Council 82]
that, "the charge need not follow the exact terms of the sanction, though
it must not relate to an offence essentially different from that to which the
sanction relates". In any case we do not think that the mention of an
inapplicable Section goes to the root of the matter or otherwise makes it
vulnerable to attack.
On the validity of sanction, we have to consider yet another contention
of the learned senior counsel Mr. R. Jethmalani that in the absence of recital
of facts to sustain prosecution or proof of consideration of such facts, the
sanction order must be held to have been vitiated on the ground of
non-application of mind. Relying on the dicta of the Privy Council in
Gokulchand's case, it has been pointed out that no facts constituting the
relevant offences were set out
in the order nor any extraneous evidence was let in to show that the
sanctioning authority was seized of the facts alleged to constitute the
relevant offence. In Gokulchand's case (supra), the sanction order of the
Government was a bald order stating that the Government was "pleased to
accord sanction under Clause 23 of Cotton Cloth and Yarn (Control) Order to the
prosecution of Mr. Gokulchand Dwarkadas for breach of the provisions of Clause
18(2) of the said order". The Privy Council held that the sanction read
with the evidence adduced at the trial was not in compliance with the
provisions of Clause 23 of the said Control Order. The following observations
in that judgment may be noted:
"####BODY####5In their Lordships' view, in order to comply with the
provisions of clause 23, it must be proved that the sanction was given in
respect of the facts constituting the offence charged. It is plainly desirable
that the facts should be referred to on the face of the sanction, but this is
not essential, since clause 23 does not require the sanction to be in any
particular form, nor even to be in writing. But if the facts constituting the
offence charged are not shown on the face of the sanction, the prosecution must
prove by extraneous evidence that those facts were placed before the
sanctioning authority####BODY####5"
The ruling of the Privy Council was cited with approval by this Court in
Jaswant Singh Vs. State of Punjab [AIR 1958 SC 124] and certain other cases.
Ultimately, the test to be applied is whether relevant material that formed the
basis of allegations constituting the offence was placed before the sanctioning
authority and the same was perused before granting sanction. We are of the view
that this test has been amply satisfied in the instant case. The sanction
orders on their face indicate that all relevant material viz., FIR, disclosure
statements, recovery memos, draft charge sheet and other material on record was
placed before the sanctioning authority. The fact that the sanctioning
authority perused all this material is also discernible from the recital in the
sanction orders. The sanction orders make it clear that the sanctioning
authority had reached the satisfaction that prima facie the accused committed
or conspired to commit the offences mentioned therein. The elaborate narration
of facts culled out from the record placed before the sanctioning authority and
the discussion as to the applicability of each and every Section of the penal
provision quoted therein is not an imperative requirement. A pedantic
repetition from what is stated in the FIR or the draft charge-sheet or other
documents is not what is called for in order to judge whether there was due
application of mind. It must be noted that the grant of sanction is an
executive act and the validity thereof cannot be tested in the light of
principles applied to the quasi-judicial orders vide the decisions in State of
Bihar Vs. P.P. Sharma [(1992) supp.1 SCC 222] and Superintendent of Police Vs.
Deepak Chowdary [(1995) 6 SCC 225]. Apart from this, the oral evidence of
PW117Deputy Secretary, Home who dealt with the file also reveals that the notes
prepared by himself and the Principal Secretary, Home had drawn the attention
of the Lt. Governor to the role of individual accused and the Principal
Secretary's note was approved by the Lt. Governor. Various documents placed
before the sanctioning authority were also mentioned by PW11. PW11 brought the
original sanction file and it is seen from the judgment of the trial Court that
the learned trial Judge had gone through the file apart from making it
available to the defence counsel. The oral evidence let in by the prosecution
by examining PW11 dispels any doubt as to the consideration of the matter by
the sanctioning authority before according the sanction. The decision of this
Court in Rambhai Nathabhai Gadhvi & Ors. Vs. State of Gujarat [(1997) 7 SCC
744] which invalidated the sanction granted by the competent authority under
the Terrorist and Disruptive Activities (Prevention) Act does not come to the
aid of the accused in the present case. The Bench consisting of A.S. Anand and
K.T. Thomas, JJ., after referring to the infirmities in the sanction order,
observed thus: "In such a situation, can it be said that the sanctioning
authority granted sanction after applying its mind effectively and after
reaching a satisfaction that it is necessary in public interest that
prosecution should be launched against the accused under TADA. As the provisions
of TADA are more rigorous and the penalty provided is more stringent and the
procedure for trial prescribed is summary and compendious, the sanctioning
process
mentioned in Section 20-A(2) must have been adopted more seriously and
exhaustively than the sanction contemplated in other penal
statutes####BODY####5"
The above observations do not mean that different standards should be
applied for judging the validity of a sanction made under the provisions of
TADA or POTA and the sanctions under ordinary laws. That is not the ratio of
the decision. The learned Judges were only pointing out that enough seriousness
was not bestowed in the process of granting sanction for prosecution under a
stringent law. The observations contained in para 10 turned on the facts of
that case which are telling. It was noticed that the only document sent to the
sanctioning authority, namely, the Director General of Police, was the FIR and
the letter of the Superintendent of Police giving only skeletal facts. It was
further noticed that the Director-General did not even grant sanction for the
prosecution but what he did was to give permission to add certain Sections of
TADA. Thus, it was a case of utter non-compliance with the elementary
requirements governing sanction. The facts of the present case are vastly
different.
No separate argument was addressed in relation to the sanction given
under the Explosive Substances Act. Suffice it to say that we find no legal
infirmity in the said order passed by the Commissioner of Police which is Ext.
PW11/3.
Addition of POTO/POTA offences
(6) (i) The next question is whether the addition of offences under
Sections 3, 4 & 5 of POTO? was justified and whether POTO should have been
invoked by the Investigating Officer on the very first day when the FIR was
registered. This question will have a bearing on the admissibility of
intercepted telephonic conversations which took place prior to 19th December
and the compliance with the provisions of Section 52 of POTA which lays down
certain safeguards from the point of view of the accused. Chapter V contains
provisions relating to interception of communications. Section 45 which starts
with a non-obstante clause lays down that the evidence collected through the
interception of wire, electronic or oral communication under Chapter V shall be
admissible as evidence against the accused during the trial of the case. There
are two provisos to the Section and the 1st proviso reads as follows.
"Provided that, the contents of any wire, electronic or oral
communication intercepted pursuant to this Chapter or evidence derived
therefrom shall not be received in evidence or otherwise disclosed in any
trial, hearing or other proceeding in any court unless each accused has been
furnished with a copy of the order of the Competent Authority and accompanying
application, under which the interception was authorized or approved not less
than ten days before trial, hearing or proceeding:"
It is common ground that the embargo placed by the first proviso comes
into operation in the instant case inasmuch as no orders were obtained for
interception from a competent authority in compliance with the various
provisions of Chapter V. The embargo under proviso to Section 45 is equally
applicable when the special Court tries along with the POTA offences, the
offences under other enactments viz., IPC, Explosives Act and Arms Act. That is
one aspect. Secondly, there are certain procedural safeguards that are laid
down in Section 52 when a person is arrested for the offences under POTA. These
safeguards were apparently introduced in keeping with the guidelines laid down
in D.K. Basu's case. They are discussed in detail later on. The question arises
whether there was deliberate failure on the part of the investigating agency to
invoke POTA initially in order to circumvent the requirements of Sections 45
& 52.
(ii) Incidentally, another question raised is whether there was
manipulation of FIR by not showing the POTA offences though in fact POTA was
resorted to by that date. In regard to the latter aspect, the learned counsel
for the accused has drawn our attention to the letter of AIRTEL (Cell phone
service provider) addressed to the I.O.7M.C. Sharma (PW66). In that letter
(Ext.PW35/1), while giving the reference to the FIR dated 13.12.2001, the offences
under various Sections of POTO were mentioned in addition to other offences.
From this, an inference is sought to be drawn that the FIR was tampered with by
deleting reference to POTO Sections so as to make it appear
that on the 13th & 14th December when the interceptions took place,
the investigation was not extended to POTO offences. We find it difficult to
accept this contention. We find no basis for the comment that the FIR would
have been manipulated by deleting the POTO offences. No such suggestion was
ever put to the police officials concerned, namely, PWs 1, 9 & 14 connected
with the registration of FIR and they were not even cross-examined. The
original FIR register was produced by PW14. The trial Court perused the same
while recording the depositions and returned it. In fact, this contention about
the manipulation of FIR was not even raised in the trial Court. The High Court
rightly found no substance in this contention. As regards the letter of AIRTEL,
no question was put to PW357the Security Manager of AIRTEL as to the basis on
which the reference was given to the FIR mentioning various POTO offences. When
the question was raised for the first time before the High Court, the High
Court perused the case diaries and found that the addressee of the letter
(Inspector M.C. Sharma) had sent up a written request on 25.12.2001 to furnish
the requisite information to him. By that time, the POTO provisions were
invoked. According to the High Court, there was every possibility that in that
letter of 25.12.2001, the POTO provisions were mentioned and based on that, the
same would have been noted in the AIRTEL's letter. The High Court also observed
that the possibility of the date 17th being a mistake cannot be ruled out.
Irrespective of the question whether the High Court was justified in observing
that the date 17th noted in (Ext. PW35/1) could be a mistake, we do not
consider it necessary to delve further into this aspect, in view of the fact
that none of the witnesses pertaining to FIR were cross examined. By reason of
the purported description of FIR given in the letter of AIRTEL (Ext.PW35/1)
alone, we cannot reach the conclusion that POTO offences entered initially in
the FIR were deleted for extraneous reasons. It is pertinent to note that the
letters addressed by the Essar Cell phone provider (vide Exts.36/6 and 36/7,
dated 13th and 18th December) do not contain any reference to POTO.
(iii) It was next contended by the learned counsel appearing for Shaukat
and Gilani that from the beginning it was crystal clear that the persons who
attempted to take control of the Parliament House were terrorists and there was
no apparent reason why the offences under POTO were not entered in the FIR.
Attention is drawn to the fact that the language used in the narration given by
PW1 in the 'rukka', viz. "the terrorist organizations in order to
disintegrate the unity and integrity of India and to carry out destructive
activities in a planned manner####BODY####5####BODY####5." is a clear
pointer that the investigating authority was conscious of applicability of POTO
from the beginning, it is contended. Though we feel that POTO provisions could
have been invoked on the very first day having regard to the nature and
manifestations of this grave crime, we find no justification to characterize
the action of the concerned police officers as malafide or motivated. It cannot
be disputed that POTA contains drastic and stringent provisions7both
substantive and procedural, for dealing with special categories of offences
which have bearing on the security and integrity of the country. In view of
this special feature of the law, it is necessary to bestow sufficient care and
thought before prosecuting an offender under this special law instead of
proceeding under the ordinary law. This aspect has been emphasized in more than
one decision of this Court dealing with TADA provisions. In Niranjan Singh
Karam Singh Punjabi Vs. Jitendra Bhimraj Bijiaya [(1990) 4 SCC 76] this Court
after noticing the views expressed in Usmanbhai Dawoodbhai Memon Vs. State of
Gujarat [(1988) 2 SCC 271] observed thus:
"####BODY####5the provisions of the Act need not be resorted to if
the nature of the activities of the accused can be checked and controlled under
the ordinary law of the land. It is only in those cases where the law enforcing
machinery finds the ordinary law to be inadequate or not sufficiently effective
for tackling the menace of terrorist and disruptive activities that resort
should be had to the drastic provisions of the Act. While invoking a criminal
statute, such as the Act, the prosecution is duty-bound to show from the record
of the case and the documents collected in the course of investigation that
facts emerging therefrom prima facie constitute an offence within the letter of
the law. ####BODY####5"
In Usmanbhai's case it was said; "Before dealing with the
contentions advanced, it is well to remember that the legislation is limited in
its scope and effect. The Act is an extreme measure to be resorted to when the
police cannot tackle the situation under the ordinary penal law. The intendment
is to provide special machinery to combat the growing menace of terrorism in
different parts of the country. Since, however, the Act is a drastic measure,
it should not ordinarily be resorted to unless the Government's law enforcing
machinery fails."
Having regard to these observations, we cannot find fault with the
Investigating Officers in going slow in bringing POTA into picture. At any
rate, it may be a case of bona fide error or overcautious approach. Once the
action of the police authorities in deferring the invocation of POTA is held to
be not mala fide, it is not possible to countenance the contention that the
provisions of POTA especially those contained in Chapter V and Section 52 ought
to have been complied with even before 19th December. It is a different matter
that D.K. Basu's guidelines were already there.
The learned counsel Mr. Gopal Subramanium has referred to the judgment
of this Court in State of West Bengal Vs. Mohammed Khaleed [(1995) 1 SCC 684]
to buttress his contention that the non- invocation of POTA on the first day
cannot be faulted. The learned counsel also argued that POTA was invoked on
19th when further evidence came to light revealing a planned terrorist act at
the behest of certain terrorist organizations. Be that as it may, we find
nothing on record to hold that the investigating officials deliberately and
without semblance of justification decided to bypass the provisions of POTO.
Charges whether defective?
7 (i) We now turn to the next contention of the charges being defective.
According to Shri Ram Jethmalani, the first charge which is a charge under
Section 120B IPC is utterly confusing. It is pointed out that a conspiracy to
wage war and to commit a terrorist act is punishable under Section 121A IPC and
Section 3(3) of the POTA respectively. Therefore, according to the learned
counsel, the charge under Section 120B is misplaced. It is also contended that
the charge does not set out in clear terms, the exact period during which the
conspiracy was allegedly hatched. The learned counsel further submits that the
alleged confessional statements on which the prosecution relied would clearly
show that the conspiracy started only in the first week of December, 2001, yet
the period of offence was stated to be "on or before 13.12.2001".
(ii) It is settled law that a 'fundamental defect' should be found in
the charges if the Court has to quash it. Whether the accused was misled and
whether there was reasonable possibility of prejudice being caused to the
accused on account of defective charges are relevant considerations in judging
the effect of wrong or deficient charges. Section 215 of Cr.P.C. makes it clear
that no error or omission in stating either the offence or the particulars required
to be stated shall be regarded as material unless the accused was in fact
misled by such error or omission and it has occasioned a failure of justice.
The test of prejudice or reasonable possibility of prejudice was applied by
this Court in William Slaney's case [AIR 1956 SC 116] in testing the argument
based on the omission, error or irregularity in framing the charges. The same
test was also applied in State of A.P. Vs. C. Ganeswar Rao [(1964) 3 SCR 297].
It has not been demonstrated in the instant case as to how the accused or any
of them were misled or any prejudice was caused to them on account of the
alleged defects in framing of charges. No such objection was even taken before
the trial Court. As pointed out in William Slaney's case (para 45 of AIR), it
will always be material to consider whether the objection to the nature of
charge was taken at an early stage. To the same effect are the observations in
Ganeswar Rao's case (supra). It is difficult to spell out with exactitude the
details relating to the starting point of conspiracy. As pointed out in Esher
Singh Vs. State of A.P. [(2004) (1 SCC page 585, 607], it is not always
possible "to give affirmative evidence about the date of formation of the
criminal conspiracy". We do not think that if instead of mentioning 'the
first week of December, 2001' the wording 'before December, 2001' is employed,
the prosecution should fail merely for that reason. The accused
cannot be said to have been misled or prejudiced on that account. On the
other hand, it is more than clear that the accused did understand the case they
were called upon to meet. The question whether Section 120B applies to POTA
offences or Section 3(3) alone applies is not a matter on which a definite
conclusion should be reached ahead of the trial. It is not uncommon that the
offence alleged might seemingly fall under more than one provision and
sometimes it may not be easy to form a definite opinion as to the Section in
which the offence appropriately falls. Hence, charges are often framed by way
of abundant caution. Assuming that an inapplicable provision has been
mentioned, it is no ground to set aside the charges and invalidate the trial.
Other legal issues
We shall, now, deal with certain legal issues, which have been debated
before us in extenso. These issues have a bearing on the
admissibility/relevancy of evidence and the evidentiary value or weight to be
attached to the permissible evidence. 8. Law regarding confessions
We start with the confessions. Under the general law of the land as
reflected in the Indian Evidence Act, no confession made to a police officer
can be proved against an accused. 'Confessions'-which is a terminology used in
criminal law is a species of 'admissions' as defined in Section 17 of the
Indian Evidence Act. An admission is a statement-oral or documentary which
enables the court to draw an inference as to any fact in issue or relevant
fact. It is trite to say that every confession must necessarily be an
admission, but, every admission does not necessarily amount to a confession.
While Section 17 to 23 deals with admissions, the law as to confessions is
embodied in Sections 24 to 30 of the Evidence Act. Section 25 bars proof of a
confession made to a police officer. Section 26 goes a step further and
prohibits proof of confession made by any person while he is in the custody of
a police officer, unless it be made in the immediate presence of a Magistrate.
Section 24 lays down the obvious rule that a confession made under any
inducement, threat or promise becomes irrelevant in a criminal proceeding. Such
inducement, threat or promise need not be proved to the hilt. If it appears to
the court that the making of the confession was caused by any inducement,
threat or promise proceeding from a person in authority, the confession is
liable to be excluded from evidence. The expression 'appears' connotes that the
Court need not go to the extent of holding that the threat etc. has in fact
been proved. If the facts and circumstances emerging from the evidence adduced
make it reasonably probable that the confession could be the result of threat,
inducement or pressure, the court will refrain from acting on such confession,
even if it be a confession made to a Magistrate or a person other than police
officer. Confessions leading to discovery of fact which is dealt with under
Section 27 is an exception to the rule of exclusion of confession made by an
accused in the custody of a police officer. Consideration of a proved
confession affecting the person making it as well as the co-accused is provided
for by Section 30. Briefly and broadly, this is the scheme of the law of
evidence vis- a-vis confessions. The allied provision which needs to be noticed
at this juncture is Section 162 of the Cr.P.C. It prohibits the use of any
statement made by any person to a police officer in the course of investigation
for any purpose at any enquiry or trial in respect of any offence under
investigation. However, it can be used to a limited extent to contradict a
witness as provided for by Section 145 of the Evidence Act. Sub-section (2) of
Section 162 makes it explicit that the embargo laid down in the Section shall
not be deemed to apply to any statement falling within clause (1) of Section 32
or to affect the provisions of Section 27 of the Evidence Act.
In the Privy Council decision of P. Narayana Swami vs. Emperor [AIR 1939
PC 47] Lord Atkin elucidated the meaning and purport of the expression
'confession' in the following words:
"####BODY####5. A confession must either admit in terms the
offence, or at any rate substantially all the facts which constitute the
offence. An admission of a gravely incriminating fact, even a conclusively
incriminating fact is not of itself a confession."
Confessions are considered highly reliable because no rational person
would make admission against his interest unless prompted by his conscience to
tell the truth. "Deliberate and voluntary confessions of guilt, if clearly
proved are among the most effectual proofs in law". (vide Taylor's
Treatise on the Law of Evidence Vol. I). However, before acting upon a
confession the court must be satisfied that it was freely and voluntarily made.
A confession by hope or promise of advantage, reward or immunity or by force or
by fear induced by violence or threats of violence cannot constitute evidence
against the maker of confession. The confession should have been made with full
knowledge of the nature and consequences of the confession. If any reasonable
doubt is entertained by the court that these ingredients are not satisfied, the
court should eschew the confession from consideration. So also the authority
recording the confession 6 be it a Magistrate or some other statutory
functionary at the pre-trial stage, must address himself to the issue whether
the accused has come forward to make the confession in an atmosphere free from
fear, duress or hope of some advantage or reward induced by the persons in
authority. Recognizing the stark reality of the accused being enveloped in a
state of fear and panic, anxiety and despair while in police custody, the
Indian Evidence Act has excluded the admissibility of a confession made to the
police officer.
Section 164 of Cr.P.C. is a salutary provision which lays down certain
precautionary rules to be followed by the Magistrate recording a confession so
as to ensure the voluntariness of the confession and the accused being placed
in a situation free from threat or influence of the police.
Before we turn our attention to the more specific aspects of confessions
under POTA, we should have a conspectus of the law on the evidentiary value of
confessions which are retracted - which is a general feature in our country and
elsewhere.
As to what should be the legal approach of the Court called upon to
convict a person primarily in the light of the confession or a retracted
confession has been succinctly summarized in Bharat vs. State of U.P. [1971 (3)
SCC 950]. Hidayatullah, C.J., speaking for a three-Judge Bench observed thus:
"Confessions can be acted upon if the court is satisfied that they
are voluntary and that they are true. The voluntary nature of the confession
depends upon whether there was any threat, inducement or promise and its truth
is judged in the context of the entire prosecution case. The confession must
fit into the proved facts and not run counter to them. When the voluntary
character of the confession and its truth are accepted, it is safe to rely on
it. Indeed a confession, if it is voluntary and true and not made under any
inducement or threat or promise, is the most patent piece of evidence against
the maker. Retracted confession, however, stands on a slightly different
footing. As the Privy Council once stated, in India it is the rule to find a
confession and to find it retracted later. A court may take into account the
retracted confession, but it must look for the reasons for the making of the
confession as well as for its retraction, and must weigh the two to determine
whether the retraction affects the voluntary nature of the confession or not.
If the court is satisfied that it was retracted because of an after-thought or
advice, the retraction may not weigh with the court if the general facts proved
in the case and the tenor of the confession as made and the circumstances of
its making and withdrawal warrant its user. All the same, the courts do not act
upon the retracted confession without finding assurance from some other sources
as to the guilt of the accused. Therefore, it can be stated that a true
confession made voluntarily may be acted upon with slight evidence to
corroborate it, but a retracted confession requires the general assurance that
the retraction was an after-thought and that the earlier statement was true.
This was laid down by this Court in an earlier case reported in Subramania
Gounden v. The State of Madras (1958 SCR 428)."
The same learned Judge observed in Haroom Hazi Abdulla v. State of
Maharashtra [1968 (2) SCR 641] that a "retracted confession must be looked
upon with greater concern unless the reasons given for having made it in the
first instance are on the face of them false." There was a further
observation in the same paragraph that retracted confession is a weak
link against the maker and more so against a co-accused. With great respect to
the eminent Judge, the comment that the retracted confession is a "weak
link against the maker" goes counter to a series of decisions. The
observation must be viewed in the context of the fact that the Court was
concentrating on the confession of the co-accused rather than the evidentiary
value of the retracted confession against the maker.
Dealing with retracted confession, a four-Judge Bench of this Court
speaking through Subba Rao, J, in Pyare Lal v. State of Assam (AIR 1957 SC
216), clarified the legal position thus:
"A retracted confession may form the legal basis of a conviction if
the court is satisfied that it was true and was voluntarily made. But it has
been held that a court shall not base a conviction on such a confession without
corroboration. It is not a rule of law, but is only rule of prudence. It cannot
even be laid down as an inflexible rule of practice or prudence that under no
circumstances such a conviction can be made without corroboration, for a court
may, in a particular case, be convicted of the absolute truth of a confession
and prepared to act upon it without corroboration; but it may be laid down as a
general rule of practice that it is unsafe to rely upon a confession, much less
on a retracted confession, unless the court is satisfied that the retracted
confession is true and voluntarily made and has been corroborated in material
particulars."
As to the extent of corroboration required, it was observed in
Subramania Gounden's case (1958 SCR 428) that each and every circumstance
mentioned in the retracted confession regarding the complicity of the maker
need not be separately and independently corroborated. The learned Judges
observed :
"it would be sufficient in our opinion that the general trend of
the confession is substantiated by some evidence which would tally with what is
contained in the confession".
Then we have the case of Shankaria v. State of Rajasthan [1978 (3) SCC
435] decided by a three-Judge Bench. Sarkaria, J, noted the twin tests to be
applied to evaluate a confession: (1) whether the confession was perfectly
voluntary and (2) if so, whether it is true and trustworthy. The learned Judge
pointed out that if the first test is not satisfied the question of applying the
second test does not arise. Then the Court indicated one broad method by which
a confession can be evaluated. It was said:
"The Court should carefully examine the confession and compare it
with the rest of the evidence, in the light of the surrounding circumstances
and probabilities of the case. If on such examination and comparison, the
confession appears to be a probable catalogue of events and naturally fits in
with the rest of the evidence and the surrounding circumstances, it may be
taken to have satisfied the second test."
In Parmanand Pegu v. State of Assam [2004 (7) SCC 779] this Court while
adverting to the expression "corroboration of material particulars"
used in Pyare Lal Bhargava's case clarified the position thus: "By the use
of the expression 'corroboration of material particulars', the Court has not
laid down any proposition contrary to what has been clarified in Subramania
Goundan case as regards the extent of corroboration required. The above
expression does not imply that there should be meticulous examination of the
entire material particulars. It is enough that there is broad corroboration in
conformity with the general trend of the confession, as pointed out in
Subramania Goundan case."
The analysis of the legal position in paragraphs 18 & 19 is also
worth noting:
"Having thus reached a finding as to the voluntary nature of a
confession, the truth of the confession should then be tested by
the court. The fact that the confession has been made voluntarily, free
from threat and inducement, can be regarded as presumptive evidence of its
truth. Still, there may be circumstances to indicate that the confession cannot
be true wholly or partly in which case it loses much of its evidentiary value.
In order to be assured of the truth of confession, this Court, in a
series of decisions, has evolved a rule of prudence that the court should look
to corroboration from other evidence. However, there need not be corroboration
in respect of each and every material particular. Broadly, there should be corroboration
so that the confession taken as a whole fits into the facts proved by other
evidence. In substance, the court should have assurance from all angles that
the retracted confession was, in fact, voluntary and it must have been
true."
The use of retracted confession against the co-accused however stands on
a different footing from the use of such confession against the maker. To come
to the grips of the law on the subject, we do no more than quoting the apt
observations of Vivian Bose, J, speaking for a three-Judge Bench, in Kashmira
Singh v. State of Madhya Pradesh (AIR 1952 SC 159). Before clarifying the law,
the learned Judge noted with approval the observations of Sir Lawrence Jenkins
that a confession can only be used to "lend assurance to other evidence
against a co-accused." The legal position was then stated thus:
"Translating these observations into concrete terms they come to
this. The proper way to approach a case of this kind is, first to marshall the
evidence against the accused excluding the confession altogether from
consideration and see whether, if it is believed, a conviction could safely be
based on it. If it is capable of belief independently of the confession, then
of course it is not necessary to call the confession in aid. But cases may
arise where the Judge is not 'prepared set on the other evidence as it stands
even though, if believed, it would be sufficient to sustain a conviction. In
such an event the Judge may call in aid the confession and use it to lend
assurance to the other evidence and thus fortify himself in believing what
without the aid of the confession he would not be prepared to accept."
The crucial expression used in Section 30 is "the Court may take
into consideration such confession". These words imply that the confession
of a co- accused cannot be elevated to the status of substantive evidence which
can form the basis of conviction of the co-accused. The import of this
expression was succinctly explained by the Privy Council in Bhuboni Sahu vs.
King (AIR 1947 PC 257) in the following words:
"The Court may take the confession into consideration and thereby,
no doubt, makes its evidence on which the Court may act; but the section does
not say that the confession is to amount to proof. Clearly there must be other
evidence. The confession is only one element in the consideration of all the
facts proved in the case; it can be put into the scale and weighed with the
other evidence". (emphasis supplied)
After referring to these decisions, a Constitution Bench of this Court
in Haricharan Kurmi v. State of Bihar [1964 (6) SCR 623] further clarified the
legal position thus:
"####BODY####5####BODY####5.In dealing with a case against an
accused person, the Court cannot start with the confession of co-accused
person; it must begin with other evidence adduced by the prosecution and after
it has formed its opinion with regard to the quality and effect of the said
evidence, then it is permissible to turn to the confession in order to receive
assurance to the confession of guilt which the judicial mind is about to reach
on the said other evidence."
(emphasis supplied)
What is the legal position relating to CONFESSIONS UNDER THE POTA is the
next important aspect.
Following the path shown by its predecessor, namely TADA Act, POTA marks
a notable departure from the general law of evidence in that it makes the
confession to a high ranking police officer admissible in evidence in the trial
of such person for the offence under POTA. As regards the confession to the
police officer, the TADA regime is continued subject to certain refinements.
Now, let us take stock of the provisions contained in Section 32 of
POTA. Sub-Section of (1) of this Section starts with a non obstante provision
with the words "Notwithstanding anything in the Code of Criminal Procedure
or in the Indian Evidence Act####BODY####5.." Then it says: "a
confession made by a person before a police officer not lower in rank than a
Superintendent of Police and recorded by such police officer either in writing
or on any mechanical or electronic device####BODY####5. shall be admissible in
the trial of such person for an offence under the Act or the rules, subject to
other provisions of the section". By this provision, the ban against the
reception of confessional statements made to the police is lifted. That is why
the non-obstante clause. This sub-section is almost identical to Section 15(1)
of TADA excepting that the words "or co-accused, abettor or conspirator
occurring after the expression "in the trial of such person" were
omitted. The other four sub-sections (2) to (5) of Section 32 are meant to
provide certain safeguards to the accused in order to ensure that the
confession is not extracted by threat or inducement. Sub-section (2) says that
the police officer, before recording a confession should explain in writing to
the person concerned that he is not bound to make a confession and that the
confession if made by him can be used against him. The right of the person to
remain silent before the police officer called upon to record the confession is
recognized by the proviso to sub-section (2). Sub-section (3) enjoins that the
confession shall be recorded in a threat-free atmosphere. Moreover, it should
be recorded in the same language as that used by the maker of the confession. The
most important safeguard provided in sub-sections (4) & (5) is that the
person from whom the confession was recorded is required to be produced before
a Chief Metropolitan Magistrate or Chief Judicial Magistrate, within 48 hours,
together with the original statement of confession in whatever manner it was
recorded. The CMM or the CJM shall then record the statement made by the person
so produced. If there is any complaint of torture, the police shall be directed
to produce the person for medical examination and thereafter he shall be sent
to the judicial custody.
9. Section 15 of TADA
It is necessary to advert to the exposition of law on the probative
quality of the confession recorded by the empowered police officer under
Section 15 of TADA Act. We may recall that under Section 15, the confession is
admissible in the trial of the person who made the confession or the co-
accused/abettor/conspirator. In State vs. Nalini (supra), Thomas, J took the
view that the confession coming within the purview of Section 15 is a
substantive evidence as against the maker thereof but it is not so as against
the co-accused/abettor or conspirator in relation to whom it can be used only
as a corroborative piece of evidence. Wadhwa, J, held that the confession of an
accused serves as a substantive evidence against himself as well as against the
co-accused, abettor or conspirator. S.S.M. Quadri, J, broadly agreed with the
view taken by Wadhwa, J. The following observations made by the learned Judge
reflect his view-point:
"On the language of sub-section (1) of Section 15, a confession of
an accused is made admissible evidence as against all those tried jointly with
him, so it is implicit that the same can be considered against all those tried
together. In this view of the matter also, Section 30 of the Evidence Act need
not be invoked for consideration of confession of an accused against a
co-accused, abettor or conspirator charged and tried in the same case along
with the accused."
The learned Judge further observed that in view of the non obstante
provision of Section 15(1), the application of Section 30 of the Evidence Act
should be excluded and therefore the considerations germane to Section 30
cannot be
imported in construing Section 15(1). Quadri, J, therefore dissented
from the view taken by Thomas, J. At the same time the learned Judge was of the
view that in so far as the use of confession against the co-accused is
concerned, rule of prudence requires that it should not be relied upon
"unless corroborated generally by other evidence on record". In
paragraph 705, the learned Judge made the following observations:
"But I wish to make it clear that even if confession of an accused
as against a co-accused tried with the accused in the same case is treated as
'substantive evidence' understood in the limited sense of fact in issue or
relevant fact, the rule of prudence requires that the court should examine the
same with great care keeping in mind the caution given by the Privy Council in
Bhuboni Sahu case", keeping in view the fact that the confession of a
co-accused is not required to be given under oath and its veracity cannot be
tested by cross-examination is yet another reason given by the learned Judge
for insisting on such corroboration. Thus the learned Judge struck a balance
between two extreme arguments. The view taken by Quadri, J. does not seem to
conflict with the view of Wadhwa, J. Though Wadhwa, J. observed that confession
of the accused is admissible with the same force in its application to the
co-accused and it is in the nature of substantive evidence, the learned Judge,
however, qualified his remarks by observing thus:
'"Substantive evidence, however, does not necessarily mean
substantial evidence. It is the quality of evidence that matters. As to what
value is to be attached to a confession will fall within the domain of
appreciation of evidence. As a matter of prudence, the court may look for some
corroboration if confession is to be used against a co-accused though that will
again be within the sphere of appraisal of evidence."
Thomas, J. was of the view that the non-obstante words in Section 15(1)
of TADA were not intended to make it substantive evidence against the non-
maker, and it can be used only as a piece of corroborative material to support
other substantive evidence.
Reference is to be made to a recent decision of this Court in Jameel
Ahmed & anr. V. State of Rajasthan [2003 (9) SCC 673] 6 a case arising
under TADA. After a survey of the earlier cases on the subject, this Court
observed: "If the confessional statement is properly recorded satisfying
the mandatory provisions of Section 15 of TADA Act and the rules made
thereunder and if the same is found by the Court as having been made
voluntarily and truthfully then the said confession is sufficient to base
conviction of the maker of the confession." This proposition is
unexceptionable. The next proposition, however, presents some difficulty. The
learned Judges added: "Whether such confession requires corroboration or
not, is a matter for the Court considering such confession on facts of each
case." This Court observed that once the confessional statement becomes
admissible in evidence then, like any other evidence, "it is for the Court
to consider whether such statement can be relied upon solely or with necessary
corroboration." The ratio behind the view taken by the learned Judges is
perhaps discernible from the following passage:
"We have already noticed that this provision of law is a departure
from the provisions of Sections 25 to 30 of the Evidence Act. As a matter of
fact, Section 15 of the TADA Act operates independent of the Evidence Act and
the Code of Criminal Procedure."
The Court then observed that the confession duly recorded under Section
15 of TADA Act becomes admissible in evidence by virtue of statutory mandate
and if it is proved to be voluntary and truthful in nature there is no reason
why such a statement should be treated as a weak piece of evidence requiring
corroboration merely because the same is recorded by a police officer. We have
to add a caveat here, while wholeheartedly accepting the view that the
confession recorded by a police officer under Section 15(1) of TADA Act
(corresponding to Section 32(1) of POTA) stand on the same footing as the
confession recorded by a Magistrate and the Court can act upon it in spite of
its
retraction if it inspires confidence in the mind of the Judge, we feel
that the rule of corroboration evolved by this Court as a matter of prudence in
relation to a retracted confession recorded by a Magistrate under Cr.P.C. need
not be dispensed with. Viewing the confession in the light of other evidence on
record and seeking corroborative support therefrom is only a process of
ascertaining the truth of the confession and is not extraneous to the first
proposition laid down by their Lordships in paragraph 35. Viewed from another
angle, we wonder whether a confession recorded by a police officer under the
special enactment should have more sanctity and higher degree of acceptability
so as to dispense with the normal rule of corroboration and leave it to the
discretion of the court whether to insist on corroboration or not, even if it
is retracted. The better view would be to follow the same rule of prudence as
is being followed in the case of confessions under general law. The
confessional statement recorded by the police officer can be the basis of
conviction of the maker, but it is desirable to look to corroboration in a
broad sense, when it is retracted. The non obstante provision adverted to by
the learned Judges should not, in our considered view, affect the operation of
the general rule of corroboration broadly.
As regards the confession being used against a co-accused, this Court in
Jameel Ahmed's case (supra), laid down the following propositions: "(iii)
In regard to the use of such confession as against a co- accused, it has to be
held that as a matter of caution, a general corroboration should be sought for
but in cases where the court is satisfied that the probative value of such
confession is such that it does not require corroboration then it may base a
conviction on the basis of such confession of the co-accused without
corroboration. But this is an exception to the general rule of requiring
corroboration when such confession is to be used against a co-accused.
(iv) The nature of corroboration required both in regard to the use of
confession against the maker as also in regard to the use of the same against a
co-accused is of a general nature, unless the court comes to the conclusion
that such corroboration should be on material facts also because of the facts
of a particular case. The degree of corroboration so required is that which is
necessary for a prudent man to believe in the existence of facts mentioned in
the confessional statement."
While we agree with the proposition that the nature of corroboration
required both in regard to the use of confession against the maker and the co-
accused is general in nature, our remarks made earlier in relation to the confession
against the maker would equally apply to proposition No.(iii) in so far as it
permits the Court in an appropriate case to base the conviction on the
confession of the co-accused without even general corroboration. We would only
add that we do not visualize any such appropriate case for the simple reason
that the assurance of the truth of confession is inextricably mixed up with the
process of seeking corroboration from the rest of the prosecution evidence. We
have expressed our dissent to this limited extent. In the normal course, a
reference to the larger Bench on this issue would be proper. But there is no
need in this case to apply or not to apply the legal position clarified in
proposition No.(iii) for the simple reason that the trial court as well as the
High Court did look for corroboration from the circumstantial evidence relating
to various facts narrated in the confessional statement. Perhaps, the view
expressed by us would only pave the way for a fresh look by a larger Bench,
should the occasion arise in future.
The learned senior counsel Mr. Ram Jethmalani severely criticised the
view taken in Nalini, Jameel Ahmed and other cases decided after Nalini. He
pointed out that the confession of a co-accused is held to be admissible in
view of the expression "shall be admissible in the trial of such person or
co- accused". But, the legislature did not intend that in deviation of the
general law, the confession of a co-accused could become the sole basis of
conviction irrespective of whether it is corroborated in relation to material
particulars or not. The counsel commends the acceptance of the ratio laid down
by Privy Council in Bhuboni Sahu in the context of a confession covered by
Section 30
of Evidence Act. The counsel reminds us that admissibility is one thing,
and the weight to be attached to the evidence is another. The learned counsel
Mr. Ram Jethmalani repeatedly pointed that the crucial observations of the
Constitution Bench in Kartar Singh's case (supra) were not noticed by this
Court in Nalini's case and this error, according to the learned senior counsel,
perpetuated. The learned counsel has drawn our attention to the categorical
observation of this Court in paragraph 255 of the majority judgment to the
effect that "the present position is in conformity with Section 30 of the
Evidence Act." He has also drawn our attention to the submission of the
learned Additional Solicitor General in Kartar Singh's case that the probative
value of the confession recorded under Section 15 should be left to the Court
to be determined in each case on its own facts and circumstances. According to
the learned counsel, the confession of co-accused should not have been elevated
to the status of confession operating against the maker. The contention
advanced by the learned senior counsel is not without force. However, we need
not dilate further on this aspect as the terminology in POTA is different and
the view which we hold is that Section 32 of POTA does not enable the Court to
take into account the confession of the co-accused. We shall now advert to this
aspect, on a comparative reference of the provisions of TADA Act and POTA.
10. Use of confession under POTA against co-accused
Now, let us examine the question whether Section 32(1) of POTA takes
within its sweep the confession of a co-accused. Section 32(1) of POTA which
makes the confession made to a high ranking police officer admissible in the
trial does not say anything explicitly about the use of confession made by co-
accused. The words in the concluding portion of Section 32(1) are: "shall
be admissible in the trial of such person for an offence under this Act or
rules made thereunder." It is, however, the contention of the learned
Senior Counsel Shri Gopal Subramanium that Section 32(1) can be so construed as
to include the admissibility of confessions of co-accused as well. The omission
of the words in POTA "or co-accused, abettor or conspirator"
following the expression "in the trial of such person" which are the
words contained in Section 15(1) of TADA does not make material difference,
according to him. It is his submission that the words 'co-accused' etc. were
included by the 1993 amendment of TADA by way of abundant caution and not
because the unamended Section of TADA did not cover the confession of co-accused.
According to the learned senior counsel, the phrase "shall be
admissible in the trial of such person" does not restrict the
admissibility only against the maker of the confession. It extends to all those
who are being tried jointly along with the maker of the confession provided
they are also affected by the confession. The learned senior counsel highlights
the crucial words-"in the trial of such person" and argues that the
confession would not merely be admissible against the maker but would be admissible
in the trial of the maker which may be a trial jointly with the other accused
persons. Our attention has been drawn to the provisions of Cr.P.C. and POTA
providing for a joint trial in which the accused could be tried not only for
the offences under POTA but also for the offences under IPC. We find no
difficulty in accepting the proposition that there could be a joint trial and
the expression "the trial of such person" may encompass a trial in
which the accused who made the confession is tried jointly with the other
accused. From that, does it follow that the confession made by one accused is
equally admissible against others, in the absence of specific words? The
answer, in our view, should be in the negative. On a plain reading of Section
32(1), the confession made by an accused before a police officer shall be
admissible against the maker of the confession in the course of his trial. It
may be a joint trial along with some other accused; but, we cannot stretch the
language of the section so as to bring the confession of the co- accused within
the fold of admissibility. Such stretching of the language of law is not at all
warranted especially in the case of a law which visits a person with serious
penal consequences (vide the observations of Ahmadi, J (as he then was) in
Niranjan Singh vs. Jitendra [(1990) 4 SCC 76] at page 86, which were cited with
approval in Kartar Singh's case). We would expect a more explicit and
transparent wording to be employed in the section to rope in the confession of the
co-accused within the net of admissibility on par with the confession of the
maker. An evidentiary rule of such importance and grave consequence to the
accused could not have been conveyed in a
deficient language. It seems to us that a conscious departure was made
by the framers of POTA on a consideration of the pros and cons, by dropping the
words "co-accused" etc.. These specific words consciously added to
Section 15(1) by 1993 amendment of TADA so as to cover the confessions of co-
accused would not have escaped the notice of Parliament when POTA was enacted.
Apparently, the Parliament in its wisdom would have thought that the law
relating to confession of co-accused under the ordinary law of evidence, should
be allowed to have its sway, taking clue from the observations in Kartar
Singh's case at paragraph 255. The confession recorded by the police officer
was, therefore, allowed to be used against the maker of the confession without
going further and transposing the legal position that obtained under TADA. We
cannot countenance the contention that the words 'co-accused' etc. were added
in Section 15(1) of TADA, ex majore cautela.
We are, therefore, of the view that having regard to all these weighty
considerations, the confession of a co-accused ought not be brought within the
sweep of Section 32(1). As a corollary, it follows that the confessions of the
1st and 2nd accused in this case recorded by the police officer under Section
32(1), are of no avail against the co-accused or against each other. We also
agree with the High Court that such confessions cannot be taken into
consideration by the Court under Section 30 of the Indian Evidence Act. The
reason is that the confession made to a police officer or the confession made
while a person is in police custody, cannot be proved against such person, not
to speak of the co- accused, in view of the mandate of Sections 25 and 26 of
the Evidence Act. If there is a confession which qualifies for proof in
accordance with the provisions of Evidence Act, then of course, the said
confession could be considered against the co-accused facing trial under POTA.
But, that is not the case here. For these reasons, the contention of the
learned senior counsel for the State that even if the confession of co-accused
is not covered by Section 32(1), it can still be taken into account by the
Court under Section 30 for the limited purpose of corroborating or lending
assurance to the other evidence on record cannot be accepted.
Learned senior counsel appearing for the State submits that there is no
conflict between Section 32 of POTA and Section 30 of the Evidence Act and
therefore the confession recorded under Section 32(1) of POTA can be taken into
consideration against the co-accused, at least to corroborate the other
evidence on record or to lend assurance thereto. There is no difficulty in
accepting the contention that Section 30 of the Evidence Act can also play its
part in a case of trial under POTA, especially when the other offences under
the IPC are also the subject matter of trial. But a confession to the police
officer by a person in police custody is not within the realm of Section 30 of
the Evidence Act and therefore such a confession cannot be used against the
co-accused even under Section 30 of the Evidence Act.
While on the subject of confession made to a police officer under sub-
section (1) of Section 32 of POTA, it would be apposite to refer in brief to
the decision of this Court in Kartar Singh v. State of Punjab [1994 (3) SCC
569]. The constitutional validity of the provisions of TADA Act came up for
consideration before the Constitution Bench. Section 15(1) of TADA Act was the
main target of attack. The majority of Judges, with Ratnavel Pandian, J,
leading them, upheld the provisions of the Act including Section 15(1). There
was a weighty dissent by two learned Judges (K. Ramaswamy, J. and R.M. Sahai,
J.) as regards the validity of Section 15(1). The constitutional issue of the
vires of the impugned provisions of TADA, including Section 15(1), was examined
from the perspective of Articles 14 and 21 of the Constitution, that is to say,
from the standpoint of classification of offenders and justness and fairness of
the procedural provisions. The three learned Judges did not find Section 15(1)
obnoxious to Article 14 or Article 21, though they took judicial notice of the
inhuman treatment often meted out by overzealous police officers and the
archaic, third degree methods adopted by them during the investigation of the
cases. In upholding the validity, the Court took into account the legal
competence of the legislature to make a law prescribing a different mode of
proof, the meaningful purpose and object of the legislation, the gravity and
consequences of terrorism and the reluctance of the public in coming forward to
give evidence. How far these considerations are relevant in providing for the
reception in evidence of the confessional statement recorded by a police
officer
has not been elaborated. Apparent hesitation of the learned Judges in
upholding the most criticized provision, namely Section 15(1) of TADA, is
reflected in the set of guidelines set out by their Lordships at paragraph 263
to ensure as far as possible that the confession obtained by the police officer
is not tainted with any vice and to impart a process of fairness into the
exercise of recording the confession. The Central Government was bidden to take
note of the guidelines and incorporate necessary amendments to the Act. These
guidelines, by and large, have become part of Section 32 of POTA to which we have
already referred. There was also an exhortation at paragraph 254 to the
high-ranking police officers empowered to record the confession that there
should be no breach of the accepted norms of recording the confession which
should reflect only a true and voluntary statement and there should be no room
for hyper criticism that the authority has obtained an invented confession.
Another interesting part of the discussion is the manner in which the Court
gave its response to the critical comments made by the counsel as to the
reprehensible methods adopted to extract the confession. The learned Judges
said with reference to this comment: "if it is shown to the Court that a
confession was extorted by illegal means such as inducement, threat or promise,
the confession thus obtained would be irrelevant and cannot be used in a
criminal proceeding against the maker." The Court thus merely emphasized
the obvious and added a remark that the Court on several occasions awarded
exemplary compensation to the victim at the hands of the police officials. The
Court took the precaution of clarifying that the police officer investigating
the case under TADA Act can get the confession or statement of the accused
recorded under Section 164 Cr.P.C. by a Magistrate.
The Constitution Bench Judgement is binding on us. In fact, the ratio of
that Judgment applies with greater force to the POTA, as the guidelines set out
by the Constitution Bench are substantially incorporated into Section 32. It is
perhaps too late in the day to seek reconsideration of the view taken by the
majority of the Judges in the Constitution Bench. But as we see Section 32, a
formidable doubt lingers in our minds despite the pronouncement in Kartar
Singh's case (supra). That pertains to the rationale and reason behind the
drastic provision, making the confession to police officer admissible in
evidence in a trial for POTA offences. Many questions do arise and we are
unable to find satisfactory or even plausible answers to them. If a person
volunteers to make a confession, why should he be not produced before the
Judicial Magistrate at the earliest and have the confession recorded by a
Magistrate? The Magistrate could be reached within the same time within which
the empowered police officer could be approached. The doubt becomes more
puzzling when we notice that in practical terms, a greater degree of
credibility is attached to a confession made before the judicial officer. Then,
why should not the Investigating Officer adopt the straightforward course of
having resort to the ordinary and age-old law? If there is any specific
advantage of conferring power on a police officer to record the confession
receivable in evidence, if the intendment and desideratum of the provision
indisputably remains to be to ensure an atmosphere free from threats and
psychological pressures? Why the circuitous provision of having confession
recorded by the police officer of the rank of S.P. (even if he be the immediate
superior of the I.O. who oversees the investigation) and then requiring the
production of the accused before the Chief Metropolitan or Judicial Magistrate
within 48 hours? We can understand if the accused is in a remote area with no
easy means of communications and the Magistrate is not easily accessible.
Otherwise, is there real expediency or good reason for allowing an option to
the I.O. to have the confession recorded either by the superior police officer
or a Judicial Magistrate? We do not think that the comparative ease with which
the confession could be extracted from the accused could be pleaded as
justification. If it is so, should the end justify the means? Should the police
officer be better trusted than a Magistrate? Does the magnitude and severity of
the offence justify the entrustment of the job of recording confession to a
police officer? Does it imply that it is easier to make an accused confess the
guilt before a police officer so that it could pave the way for conviction in a
serious offence? We find no direct answer to these questions either in Kartar
Singh's case (supra) or the latest case of People's Union for Civil Liberties
vs. Union of India [2004 (9) SCC 580].
The quality of a nation's civilization can be largely measured by the
methods it uses in the enforcement of its criminal law, as said by the eminent
American jurist Schaefer. We may recall as well the apt remarks of
Krishna Iyer, J. in Nandini Satpathy Vs. P.L. Dani [(1978) 2 SCC 424]:
"The first obligation of the criminal justice system is to secure
justice by seeking and substantiating truth through proof. Of course, the means
must be as good as the ends and the dignity of the individual and the freedom
of the human person cannot be sacrificed by resort to improper means, however
worthy the ends. Therefore, 'third degree' has to be outlawed and indeed has
been. We have to draw up clear lines between the whirlpool and the rock where
the safety of society and the worth of the human person may co-exist in
peace."
In People's Union for Civil Liberties case, a two Judge Bench of this
Court upheld the constitutional validity of Section 32 following the
pronouncement in Kartar Singh's case. The learned Judges particularly noted the
'additional safeguards' envisaged by sub-Sections (4) and (5) of Section 32.
The court referred to the contention that there was really no need to empower
the police officer to record the confession since the accused has to be in any
case produced before the Magistrate and in that case the Magistrate himself
could record the confession. This argument was not dealt with by their Lordships.
However, we refrain from saying anything contrary to the legal position settled
by Kartar Singh and People's Union for Civil Liberties. We do no more than
expressing certain doubts and let the matter rest there. It has been pointed
out to us that even in advanced countries like U.K. and U.S.A., where
individual liberty is given primacy, there is no legal taboo against the
reception of confessional statement made to police in evidence. We do not think
that it is apt to compare the position obtaining in those countries to that in
India. The ground realities cannot be ignored. It is an undeniable fact that
the police in our country still resort to crude methods of investigation,
especially in mofussil and rural areas and they suffer many handicaps, such as
lack of adequate personnel, training, equipment and professional independence.
These features, by and large, are not so rampant in those advanced countries.
Considered from the standpoint of scientific investigation, intensity of
training and measure of objectivity, the standards and approaches of police
personnel are much different in those countries. The evils which the framers of
the Indian Evidence Act had in mind to exclude confessions to the police, are
still prevalent though not in the same degree. After independence, no doubt,
some positive steps have been taken to improve the working pattern, utility and
image of the police force, but, much desires to be achieved in this direction.
Complaints of violation of human rights by resorting to dubious methods of
investigation, politicization of the police establishment and victimization of
the straightforward and honest officers are some of the criticisms that are
being heard day in and day out. Even many amongst the public tacitly endorse
the use of violence by police against the criminals. In this scenario, we have
serious doubts whether it would be safe to concede the power of recording
confessions to the police officers to be used in evidence against the accused
making the confession and the co-accused. The Law Commission of India in its
185th Report on review of the Indian Evidence Act has expressed strong views
disfavouring the admission of confessions made to Police Officers. The
Commission commented that the basis for introducing Sections 25 and 26 in the
Evidence Act in 1872 holds good even today. The Commission observed7"we
are compelled to say that confessions made easy, cannot replace the need for
scientific and professional investigation".
In England, even though the confessions to the police can be received in
evidence the voluntariness of the confessions are tested by adopting stringent
standards. Section 76 of the Police and Criminal Evidence Act, 1984, deals with
confession in England. Sub-section (2) of Section 76 is important:
"(2) If, in any proceedings where the prosecution proposes to give
in evidence a confession made by an accused person, it is represented to the
court that the confession was or may have been obtained-
(a) by oppression of the person who made it; or
(b) in consequence of anything said or done which was likely, in the
circumstances existing at the time, to render unreliable
any confession which might be made by him in consequence thereof, the
court shall not allow the confession to be given in evidence against him except
in so far as the prosecution proves to the court beyond reasonable doubt that
the confession (notwithstanding that it may be true) was not obtained as
aforesaid."
Thus the prosecution has to prove beyond reasonable doubt that the
confession was made voluntarily and was reliable.
The Court of Appeal decision in Regina vs. Middleton (1975 All E.R. 191)
shows that whenever the admissibility of a confession is challenged "a
trial within a trial" is conducted to test the voluntariness of such
confession at the earliest. In England, in the light of the Human Rights Act of
1988, a fresh look is being taken into the existing provisions of the Police
and Criminal Evidence Act and other allied laws including the Law of
Confessions.
In United States, according to the decisions of the Supreme Court viz.,
Miranda Vs. Arizona [384 US 436]; Escobedo Vs. Linnaeus [378 US 478], the
prosecution cannot make use of the statements stemming from custodial
interrogation unless it demonstrates the use of procedural safeguards to secure
the right against self-incrimination and these safeguards include a right to
counsel during such interrogation and warnings to the suspect/accused of his
right to counsel and to remain silent. In Miranda case (decided in 1966), it
was held that the right to have counsel present at the interrogation was
indispensable to the protection of the V Amendment privilege against self-
incrimination and to ensure that the right to choose between silence and speech
remains unfettered throughout the interrogation process. However, this rule is
subject to the conscious waiver of right after the individual was warned of his
right.
As the law now stands, the confession recorded by the police officer
under Section 32(1) of POTA is admissible in evidence. The voluntariness and
reliability of confession can of course be tested by the court. The admission
of such confession would also be subject to the observance of the other
provisions of Section 32 of POTA which are in the nature of procedural
safeguards aimed at ensuring that the confessions are made by the accused in an
atmosphere free from threat and inducement.
There is one argument of Mr. Sushil Kumar appearing for the accused
Afzal which needs to be adverted to. His contention is that the word 'evidence'
is not used either under Section 32(1) or Section 32(2) of POTA unlike Section
15(2) of TADA which requires the Police Officer to warn the person making the
confession that it may be used as 'evidence' against him. He therefore argues
that the only route through which the confession can be treated as evidence
against the accused is by having recourse to Section 164 Cr.P.C. The
contention, in our view, is devoid of merit. The mere fact that the expression
'admissible only' is used without being followed by the words 'in evidence',
does not, by any canon of construction, deprive the confession recorded under
Section 32 of POTA its evidentiary value; otherwise Section 32(1), more
especially the expression 'admissible' contained therein will become ineffectual
and senseless. We cannot, therefore, accept this extreme contention.
11. Section 10 of Evidence Act
The next question is whether the confession of the accused which cannot
be proved against a co-accused either under Section 32(1) of POTA or under
Section 30 of the Evidence Act, would be relevant evidence against the co-
accused involved in the conspiracy by reason of Section 10 of the Evidence Act.
The section reads thus:
"10. Things said or done by conspirator in reference to common
design.- Where there is reasonable ground to believe that two or more persons
have conspired together to commit an offence or an actionable wrong, anything
said, done or written by any one of such persons in reference to their common
intention, after the time when such intention was first entertained by any one
of them, is a relevant fact as against each of the persons believed to so
conspiring, as well for the purpose of proving the existence of the conspiracy
as for the purpose of showing that any such person was a party to it."
In Kehar Singh & ors. vs. State (Delhi Administration) [1988 (3) SCC
609], Jagannatha Shetty, J., has analysed the section as follows: "From an
analysis of the section, it will be seen that Section 10 will come into play
only when the court is satisfied that there is reasonable ground to believe
that two or more persons have conspired together to commit an offence. There
should be, in other words, a prima facie evidence that the person was a party
to the conspiracy before his acts can be used against his co- conspirator. Once
such prima facie evidence exists, anything said, done or written by one of the
conspirators in reference to the common intention, after the said intention was
first entertained, is relevant against the others. It is relevant not only for
the purpose of proving the existence of conspiracy, but also for proving that
the other person was a party to it."
Section 10 of Evidence act is based on the principle of agency operating
between the parties to the conspiracy inter se and it is an exception to the
rule against hearsay testimony. If the conditions laid down therein are
satisfied, the act done or statement made by one is admissible against the co-
conspirators (vide AIR 1965 SC 682).
The learned senior counsel Mr. Gopal Subramanium submits that Section
10, which is an exception to Section 30 of the Evidence Act, can be availed of
by the prosecution to rely on the facts stated in the confessional statement of
the accused to prove the existence of conspiracy and the co-conspirator being
party to it. He contends that there is more than prima facie evidence in this
case that there was a conspiracy to launch an attack on the Parliament building
and therefore, the first ingredient of the reasonable ground of belief is
satisfied. The next and more controversial part of the submission is that the
statement of one of the conspirators who has made the confession throwing light
on the common intention of all the accused can be used in evidence against the
co-conspirators or the co-accused irrespective of the fact that such statements
were made after the conclusion of the conspiracy and after the accused were
arrested. As the law laid down by the Privy Council in Mirza Akbar vs. King
Emperor (AIR 1940 PC 176) on the interpretation of Section 10 does not support
the contention of the counsel for the State, the learned counsel was critical
of the dictum laid down in that case and equally critical of the long line of
authorities which accepted the ruling of the Privy Council. This is what Lord
Wright said in Mirza Akbar's case: "This being the principle, their
Lordships think the words of Section 10 must be construed in accordance with it
and are not capable of being widely construed so as to include a statement made
by one conspirator in the absence of the other with reference to past acts done
in the actual course of carrying out the conspiracy, after it has been
completed. The common intention is in the past. In their Lordships' judgment,
the words 'common intention' signify a common intention existing at the time
when the thing was said, done or written by one of them. Things said, done or
written while the conspiracy was on foot are relevant as evidence of the common
intention, once reasonable ground has been shown to believe in its existence.
But it would be a very different matter to hold that any narrative or statement
or confession made to a third party after the common intention or conspiracy
was no longer operating and had ceased to exist is admissible against the other
party. There is then no common intention of the conspirators to which the
statement can have reference. In their Lordships' judgment Section 10 embodies
this principle. That is the construction which has been rightly applied to
Section 10 in decisions in India. ####BODY####5 ####BODY####5 ####BODY####5
####BODY####5
In these cases the distinction was rightly drawn between communications
between conspirators while the conspiracy was going on with reference to the
carrying out of conspiracy and statements made, after arrest or after the conspiracy
has ended, by way of description of events then past."
In Sardul Singh Caveeshar vs. State of Bombay (1958 SCR 161), a
three-Judge Bench of this Court approvingly referred to the decision of the
Privy Council. However, the following observation made therein does not go
counter to the submission of Mr. Subramanium: "where the charge specified
the period of conspiracy, evidence of acts of co-conspirators outside the
period is not receivable in evidence".
But, the ultimate conclusion is not strictly in conformity with that
remark. After referring to this and the other decisions, Thomas, J. observed in
State of Gujarat vs. Mohammed Atik and ors. [1998 (4) SCC 351] thus:
"Thus, the principle is no longer res integra that any statement made by
an accused after his arrest, whether as a confession or otherwise, cannot fall
within the ambit of Section 10 of the Evidence Act."
Referring to the decision in Mohammed Atik's case (supra) and Sardul
Singh Caveeshar (supra), Arijit Pasayat, J., speaking for a three-Judge Bench
in Mohd. Khalid vs. State of West Bengal [2002 (7) SCC 334], stated the legal
position thus:
"We cannot overlook that the basic principle which underlies
Section 10 of the Evidence Act is the theory of agency. Every conspirator is an
agent of his associate in carrying out the object of the conspiracy. Section
10, which is an exception to the general rule, while permitting the statement
made by one conspirator to be admissible as against another conspirator
restricts it to the statement made during the period when the agency subsisted.
Once it is shown that a person became snapped out of the conspiracy, any
statement made subsequent thereto cannot be used as against the other
conspirators under Section 10."
Ultimately, the test applied was whether any particular accused
continued to be the member of the conspiracy after his arrest. Though the
learned Judge stated that "similar view was expressed by this Court in
State vs. Nalini", we find no such statement of law in Nalini's case.
However, this accidental slip does not make any difference. The law is thus
well settled that the statements made by the conspirators after they are
arrested cannot be brought within the ambit of Section 10 of the Evidence Act,
because by that time the conspiracy would have ended. If so, the statement
forming part of the confessional statement made to the police officer under
Section 32(1) of POTA cannot be pressed into service by the prosecution against
the other co-accused. Thus, the endeavour to bring the confessional statement
of co-accused into the gamut of evidence through the route of Section 10 is
frustrated by a series of decisions, starting from Mirza Akbar's case (1940).
Learned senior counsel Mr. Gopal Subramanium argued that the view taken
by the Privy Council runs counter to the language of Section 10, and moreover,
if that interpretation is to be adopted, there would hardly be any evidence
which could be admitted under section 10, the reason being that the statements
would necessarily be made by the witnesses after the termination of conspiracy.
The correct interpretation, according to the learned senior counsel is, whether
the statements made by the conspirators testifying to the common plan, whether
confessional or not, relate to the period of conspiracy or to the period
post-termination. The relevance of such statements under Section 10 cannot be
whittled down with reference to the point of time when the statement was made.
The leaned senior counsel, therefore, submits that the exclusion of post-arrest
statements of the conspirators, is not warranted by the language employed in
the section and it makes Section 10 nugatory. Though, in our view, the Section
can still play its role, we find some force in this contention. But, it is not
open to us to upset the view reiterated in a long line of decisions.
The learned counsel Mr. Gopal Subramanium has also endeavoured to invoke
precedential support for his argument. He referred to Bhagwan Swarup vs. State
of Maharashtra (AIR 1965 SC 682) (known as the 2nd Caveeshar case) in which
Subba Rao, J., speaking for a three-Judge Bench
analysed the ingredients of Section 10 as follows:-
"(1) There shall be a prima facie evidence affording a reasonable
ground for a Court to believe that two or more persons are members of a conspiracy,
(2) if the said condition is fulfilled, anything said, done or written by any
one of them in reference to their common intention will be evidence against the
other, (3) anything said, done or written by him should have been said, done or
written by him after the intention was formed by any of them; (4) it would also
be relevant for the said purpose against another who entered the conspiracy
whether it was said, done or written before he entered the conspiracy or after
he left it; and (5) it can only be used against a co-conspirator and not in his
favour."
The limitation inferred by the Privy Council that the acts or statements
of the conspirator should have been made when the conspiracy was afoot was not
imported in to the interpretation of the section. On the other hand, the
proposition No.4 might indicate that even the statement made and acts done
after a person left the conspiracy, could be proved against others. The Privy
Council decision in Mirza Akbar's case was not referred to. The issue as raised
now was not discussed. However, the 1st Caveeshar case (AIR 1957 SC 747) in
which the Privy Council's decision was cited, was adverted to. In the 1st
Caveeshar's case also decided by a three Judge Bench (supra), the ratio of the
Privy Council decision in Mirza Akabar's case was approved and applied.
The learned counsel then referred to the case of Ammini & ors. vs.
State of Kerala [1998 (2) SCC 301], wherein this Court referred to Section 10
of the Evidence Act and observed thus:
"The High Court held as there was reasonable ground to believe that
Ammini and other accused had conspired together and, therefore, the confession
made by A-1 could be used against other accused also."
There was no reference to the earlier cases which were binding on the
Court. The view of the High Court was merely endorsed. The learned senior
counsel Mr. Gopal Subramanium then submitted that in Nalini's case this Court
admitted the confessional statement made by one of the accused after his arrest
under section 10 of the Evidence Act. But we do not find anything in that
judgment to support this statement. Wadhwa, J on whose judgment reliance is
placed did not say anything contrary to what was laid down in Mirza Akbar's
case. After referring to Mirza Akbar's case, Wadhwa, J. adverted to the
contention that Section 10 becomes inapplicable once the conspirator is nabbed.
The comment of the learned Judge was; "That may be so in a given case but
is not of universal application. If the object of conspiracy has not been
achieved and there is still agreement to do the illegal act, the offence of
criminal conspiracy is there and Section 10 of the Evidence Act applies".
(vide para 579 of SCC)
Then follows the crucial finding that the prosecution in the present
case has not led any evidence to show that any particular accused continued to
be a member of the conspiracy after he was arrested. It shows that the ultimate
conclusion accords with the view expressed in Mirza Akbar. At paragraph 581,
there is further discussion on the scope of Section 10. One observation made by
the learned Judge in that para needs to be clarified. The learned Judge
observed thus:
"When two or more persons enter into a conspiracy any act done by
any one of them pursuant to the agreement is, in contemplation of law, the act
of each of them and they are jointly responsible therefor. This means that
everything said, written or done by any of the conspirators in execution of or
in reference to their common intention is deemed to have been said, done or
written by each of them". (emphasis supplied)
We do not find any such deeming provision in Section 10. No doubt,
Section 10 rests on the principle of agency. But, it does not in terms
treat the statements made and acts done by one conspirator as the statements or
acts of all. Section 10 only lays down a rule of relevancy. It says that
anything done or said by one of the conspirators in reference to the common
intention is a relevant fact as against each of the conspirators to prove two
things: (i) existence of the conspiracy and (ii) that they were parties to the
conspiracy. As pointed out by the Privy Council in Mirza Akbar's case, the
thing done, written or spoken in the course of carrying out the conspiracy
"was receivable as a step in the proof of the conspiracy". This
dictum was approvingly referred to in the 1st Caveeshar case (AIR 1957 SC 747).
The learned senior counsel then referred to the decision of this Court
in Tribhuwan vs. State of Maharashtra [1972 (3) SCC 511], in which the accused
examined himself as a witness and his evidence was admitted under Section 10 of
the Evidence Act, mainly on the ground that his deposition could be subjected
to cross-examination. So also in the case of K. Hashim vs. State of Tamil Nadu,
the evidence of co-accused who subsequently became approver, was admitted under
Section 10. These two cases rest on a different principle and cannot be said to
have differed with the view taken in Mirza Akbar's case.
However, there are two decisions of this Court rendered by two Judge
Benches, which have taken the view that the facts stated in the confessional
statement of one of the accused can be used against the other accused. The
first one is Bhagwandas Keshwani & anr. vs. State of Rajasthan [1974 (4)
SCC 611] decided by a two-Judge Bench (M.H. Beg and Y.V. Chandrachud, JJ), in
which Beg, J. observed thus:
"It seems to us that the extreme argument that nothing said or done
by Vishnu Kumar could be taken into account in judging the guilt of Keshwani
when there is a charge for conspiracy under Section 120B IPC overlooks the
provisions of Section 10 of the Evidence Act####BODY####5. At any rate, proof
of the fact, even from admissions of Vishnu Kumar, that false and fictitious cash
memos were prepared due to an agreement between the two accused, could be used
against each accused."
None of the previous decisions were referred to by their Lordships. The
other case is that of State of Maharashtra vs. Damu [2000 (6) SCC 269] which
was also decided by a two Judge Bench. The learned Judges after analyzing the
ingredients of Section 10, held thus: "In this case there can be no doubt,
relying on Ex.88 that there are reasonable grounds to believe that all the four
accused have conspired together to commit the offences of abduction and murders
of the children involved in this case. So what these accused have spoken to
each other in reference to their common intention as could be gathered from
Ex.88 can be regarded as relevant facts falling within the purview of Section
10 of the Evidence Act. It is not necessary that a witness should have deposed
to the fact so transpired between the conspirators. A dialogue between them
could be proved through any other legally permitted mode. When Ex.88 is legally
proved and found admissible in evidence, the same can be used to ascertain what
was said, done or written between the conspirators. Al the things reported in
that confession referring to what A-1 Damu Gopinath and A-3 Mukunda Thorat have
said and done in reference to the common intention of the conspirators are thus
usable under Section 10 of the Evidence Act as against those two accused as
well, in the same manner in which they are usable against A-4 Damu Joshi
himself."
Thus, the confessional statement (Ext.88) made by one of the parties to
the conspiracy was made use of against the other parties/accused. It is
interesting to note that the decision in State of Gujarat vs. Mohammed Atik
(supra) rendered by one of the learned Judges, was noticed but the crucial part
of the observation therein ruling out the applicability of Section 10 was not
adverted to. The 2nd Caveeshar case (AIR 1965 SC 682) was also noticed. However
much we are convinced of the arguments advanced by the
learned senior counsel for the State, we are unable to give effect to
the law laid down in these two cases which runs counter to the larger Bench
decisions noticed supra, especially when the previous decisions bearing on the
point were not discussed. No doubt the judgment in 2nd Caveeshar case was of
three learned Judges but the 4th proposition laid down therein is not so
categorical as to convey the idea that even the confessional statement recorded
after the arrest, could be used against the co-conspirators.
The case of Queen Vs. Blake decided in 1844 [115 ER 49] is illustrative
of the parameters of the common law rule similar to Section 10 of the Indian
Evidence Act. The Privy Council in the case of R Vs. Blake [AIR 1940 PC 176]
referred to that case and observed thus: "####BODY####5The leading case of
(1844) 6 QB 126 : 115 ER 49 (E) illustrates the two aspects of it, because that
authority shows both what is admissible and what is inadmissible. What, in that
case, was held to be admissible against the conspirator was the evidence of
entries made by his fellow conspirator contained in various documents actually
used for carrying out the fraud. But a document not created in the course of
carrying out the transaction, but made by one of the conspirators after the
fraud was completed, was held to be inadmissible against the
other####BODY####5####BODY####5It had nothing to do with carrying the
conspiracy into effect."
In the light of the foregoing discussion, we have no option but to
reject the contention of Mr. Gopal Subramanium on the interpretation of Section
10, though not without hesitation. However, in view of the fact that
confessional statement is not being relied on, the question of applicability of
Section 10 fades into insignificance. 12. Conspiracy
As conspiracy is the primary charge against the accused, we shall now
advert to the law of conspiracy 6 its definition, essential features and proof.
Section 120-A of IPC defines criminal conspiracy. It says: "when two or
more persons agree to do or cause to be done (i) an illegal act or (ii) an act
which is not illegal by illegal means, such an agreement is designated a
criminal conspiracy. Section 120-B prescribes the punishment to be imposed on a
party to a criminal conspiracy. As pointed out by Subba Rao, J in Major E.G.
Barsay Vs. State of Bombay (AIR 1961 SC 1762):
"####BODY####5the gist of the offence is an agreement to break the
law. The parties to such an agreement will be guilty of criminal conspiracy,
though the illegal act agreed to be done has not been done. So too, it is not
an ingredient of the offence that all the parties should agree to do a single
illegal act. It may comprise the commission of a number of acts".
Under section 43 of the IPC, an act would be illegal if it is an offence
or if it is prohibited by law. Section 120-A and 120-B were brought on the
statute book by way of amendment to IPC in 1913. The Statement of Objects and
Reasons to the amending Act reveals that the underlying purpose was to make a
mere agreement to do an illegal act or an act which is not illegal by illegal
means punishable under law. This definition is almost similar to the definition
of conspiracy, which we find in Halsbury's Laws of England. The definition
given therein is:
"Conspiracy consists in the agreement of two or more persons to do
an unlawful act, or to do a lawful act by unlawful means. It is an indictable
offence at common law. The essence of the offence of conspiracy is the fact of
combination by agreement. The agreement may be express or implied or in part
express and in part implied####BODY####5.. and the offence continues to be
committed so long as the combination persists, that is until the conspiratorial
agreement is terminated by completion of its performance or by abandonment or
frustration or however it may be".
In America, the concept of criminal conspiracy is no different. In
American Jurisprudence, 2nd Edn., Vol.16, Page 129, the following definition of
conspiracy is given:
"A conspiracy is said to be an agreement between two or more
persons to accomplish together a criminal or unlawful act or to achieve by
criminal or unlawful means an act not in itself criminal or unlawful ... The
unlawful agreement and not its accomplishment is the gist or essence of the
crime of conspiracy."
Earlier to the introduction of Section 120-A and B, conspiracy per se
was not an offence under the Indian Penal Code except in respect of the offence
mentioned in Section 121-A. However, abetment by conspiracy was and still
remains to be an ingredient of abetment under clause secondly of Section 107 of
IPC. The punishment therefor is provided under various sections viz. Section
108 to 117. Whereas under Section 120A, the essence of the offence of criminal
conspiracy is a bare agreement to commit the offence, the abetment under
Section 107 requires the commission of some act or illegal omission pursuant to
the conspiracy. A charge under Section 107/109 should therefore be in
combination with a substantive offence, whereas the charge under Section
120-A/120-B could be an independent charge.
In the Objects and Reasons to the Amendment Bill, it was explicitly
stated that the new provisions (120-A & B) were "designed to
assimilate the provisions of the Indian Penal Code to those of the English Law
####BODY####5####BODY####5####BODY####5####BODY####5####BODY####5." Thus,
Sections 120-A & B made conspiracy a substantive offence and rendered the
mere agreement to commit an offence punishable. Even if an overt act does not
take place pursuant to the illegal agreement, the offence of conspiracy would
still be attracted. The passages from Russell on Crimes, the House of Lords
decision in Quinn vs. Leathem (1901 AC 495), and the address of Willes, J to
the Jury in Mulcahy Vs. Queen (1868 3 HL 306) are often quoted in the decisions
of this Court. The passage in Russell on Crimes referred to by Jagannatha
Shetty, J in Kehar Singh's case [1988 (3) SCC at page 731] is quite apposite:
"The gist of the offence of conspiracy then lies, not in doing the
act, or effecting the purpose for which the conspiracy is formed, nor in
attempting to do them, nor in inciting others to do them, but in the forming of
the scheme or agreement between the parties. Agreement is essential. Mere
knowledge, or even discussion, of the plan is not, per se enough"
This passage brings out the legal position succinctly. In Nalini's case,
S.S.M. Quadri, J, pointed out that the meeting of minds of two or more persons
for doing an illegal act or an act by illegal means is a sine qua non of the
criminal conspiracy. Judge L. Hand, in Van Riper vs. United States (13 F 2d.
961) said of conspiracy: "When men enter into an agreement for an unlawful
end, they become ad hoc agents for one another and have made a partnership in
crime."
In Yashpal Mittal vs. State of Punjab [1977 (4) SCC 540], Goswami, J,
speaking for a three-Judge Bench analysed the legal position relating to
criminal conspiracy. At pages 610-611, the learned Judge observed that
"the very agreement, the concert or league is the ingredient of the
offence." and that "it is not necessary that all the conspirators
must know each and every detail of the conspiracy". It was then observed
that "there must be unity of object or purpose but there may be plurality
of means, sometimes even unknown to one another, amongst the
conspirators." Dr. Sri Hari Singh Gour in his well known 'Commentary on
Penal Law of India', (Vol.2, 11th Edn. page 1138) summed up the legal position
in the following words:
"In order to constitute a single general conspiracy there must be a
common design. Each conspirator plays his separate part in one integrated and
united effort to achieve the common purpose. Each one is aware that he has a
part to play in a general conspiracy though he may not know all its secrets or
the means by which the common purpose is to be accomplished. The evil scheme
may be promoted by a few, some may drop out and some may join at a later stage,
but the conspiracy continues until it is broken up. The conspiracy may develop
in successive stages. There may be general plan to accomplish the common design
by such means as may from time to time be found expedient."
In State of H.P. Vs. Krishan Lal Pradhan [1987 (2) SCC page 17], it was
reiterated that every one of the conspirators need not take active part in the
commission of each and every one of the conspiratorial acts.
In the case of State Vs. Nalini [1999 (5) SCC 253], S.S.M. Quadri, J,
after a survey of case law made the following pertinent observations: (at
paragraph 662)
"In reaching the stage of meeting of minds, two or more persons
share information about doing an illegal act or a legal act by illegal means.
This is the first stage where each is said to have knowledge of a plan for
committing an illegal act or a legal act by illegal means. Among those sharing
the information some or all may form an intention to do an illegal act or a
legal act by illegal means. Those who do form the requisite intention would be
parties to the agreement and would be conspirators but those who drop out
cannot be roped in as collaborators on the basis of mere knowledge unless they
commit acts or omissions from which a guilty common intention can be inferred.
It is not necessary that all the conspirators should participate from the
inception to the end of the conspiracy; some may join the conspiracy after the
time when such intention was first entertained by any one of them and some
others may quit from the conspiracy. All of them cannot but be treated as
conspirators. Where in pursuance of the agreement the conspirators commit
offences individually or adopt illegal means to do a legal act which has a
nexus to the object of conspiracy, all of them will be liable for such offences
even if some of them have not actively participated in the commission of those
offences.
There is exhaustive reference to various cases by Arijit Pasayat, J, in
Mohd. Khalid Vs. State of W.B. [2002 (7) SCC 334]. In Mohammed Usman Vs. State
of Maharashatra [1981 (2) SCC 443] it was observed that the agreement amongst
the conspirators can be inferred by necessary implication.
There is one particular observation made by Jagannadha Shetty in Kehar
Singh's (supra) case which needs to be explained. The learned Judge observed:
"It is, however, essential that the offence of conspiracy requires
some kind of physical manifestation of agreement. The express agreement,
however, need not be proved nor is it necessary to prove the actual words of
communication. The evidence as to transmission of thoughts sharing the unlawful
design may be sufficient".
The expression 'physical manifestation' seems to be the phraseology used
in the Article referred to by the learned Judge. However, the said expression
shall not be equated to 'overt act' which is a different concept. As rightly
stated by the learned senior counsel, Mr. Gopal Subramanium, the phrase has
reference to the manifestation of the agreement itself, such as by way of
meetings and communications.
Mostly, the conspiracies are proved by the circumstantial evidence, as
the conspiracy is seldom an open affair. Usually both the existence of the
conspiracy and its objects have to be inferred from the circumstances and the
conduct of the accused. (Per Wadhwa, J. in Nalini's case (supra) at page 516).
The well known rule governing circumstantial evidence is that each and every
incriminating circumstance must be clearly established by reliable evidence and
"the circumstances proved must form a chain of events from which the only
irresistible conclusion about the guilt of the accused can be safely drawn and
no other hypothesis against the guilt is possible." G.N. Ray, J. in
Tanibeert Pankaj Kumar [1997 (7) SCC 156], observed that this Court should not
allow the suspicion to take the place of legal proof.
As pointed out by Fazal Ali, J, in V.C. Shukla vs. State [1980 (2) SCC
665], " in most cases it will be difficult to get direct evidence of the
agreement, but a conspiracy can be inferred even from circumstances giving rise
to a conclusive or irresistible inference of an agreement between two or more
persons to commit an offence." In this context, the observations in the
case Noor Mohammad Yusuf Momin vs. State of Maharashtra (AIR 1971 SC
885) are worth nothing:
"####BODY####5in most cases proof of conspiracy is largely
inferential though the inference must be founded on solid facts. Surrounding
circumstances and antecedent and subsequent conduct, among other factors,
constitute relevant material."
A few bits here and a few bits there on which the prosecution relies
cannot be held to be adequate for connecting the accused in the offence of
criminal conspiracy. The circumstances before, during and after the occurrence
can be proved to decide about the complicity of the accused. [vide Esher Singh
vs. State of A.P., 2004 (11) SCC 585].
Lord Bridge in R. vs. Anderson [1985 (2) All E.R. 961] aptly said that
the evidence from which a jury may infer a criminal conspiracy is almost
invariably to be found in the conduct of the parties. In (AIR 1945 PC 140), the
Privy Council warned that in a joint trial care must be taken to separate the
admissible evidence against each accused and the judicial mind should not be
allowed to be influenced by evidence admissible only against others. "A
co- defendant in a conspiracy trial", observed Jackson, J, "occupies
an uneasy seat" and "it is difficult for the individual to make his
own case stand on its own merits in the minds of jurors who are ready to
believe that birds of a feather are flocked together." [vide Alvin
Krumlewitch vs. United States of America, (93 L.Ed. 790). In Nalini's case,
Wadhwa, J pointed out, at page 517 of the SCC, the need to guard against
prejudice being caused to the accused on account of the joint trial with other
conspirators. The learned Judge observed that "there is always difficulty
in tracing the precise contribution of each member of the conspiracy but then
there has to be cogent and convincing evidence against each one of the accused
charged with the offence of conspiracy". The pertinent observation of
Judge Hand in U.S. vs. Falcone (109 F. 2d,579) was referred to: "This
distinction is important today when many prosecutors seek to sweep within the
dragnet of conspiracy all those who have been associated in any degree whatever
with the main offenders." At paragraph 518, Wadhwa, J, pointed out that
the criminal responsibility for a conspiracy requires more than a merely
passive attitude towards an existing conspiracy. The learned Judge then set out
the legal position regarding the criminal liability of the persons accused of
the conspiracy as follows: "One who commits an overt act with knowledge of
the conspiracy is guilty. And one who tacitly consents to the object of a
conspiracy and goes along with the other conspirators, actually standing by
while the others put the conspiracy into effect, is guilty though he intends to
take no active part in the crime."
One more principle which deserves notice is that cumulative effect of
the proved circumstances should be taken into account in determining the guilt
of the accused rather than adopting an isolated approach to each of the
circumstances. Of course, each one of the circumstances should be proved beyond
reasonable doubt. Lastly, in regard to the appreciation of evidence relating to
conspiracy, the Court must take care to see that the acts or conduct of the
parties must be conscious and clear enough to infer their concurrence as to the
common design and its execution. K.J. Shetty, J, pointed out in Kehar Singh's
case that "the innocuous, innocent or inadvertent events and incidents
should not enter the judicial verdict."
Before we close the discussion on the topic of conspiracy in general, we
must note the argument of the learned senior counsel for the State Mr. Gopal
Subramanium who in his endeavour to invoke the theory of agency in all its
dimensions so as to make each of the conspirators constructively liable for the
offences actually committed by others pursuant to the conspiracy, relied on the
dictum of Coleridge, J. in Regina vs. Murphy (173 ER 502), which will be
referred to later on. The learned senior counsel submits that where overt acts
have been committed, all conspirators will have to be punished equally for the
substantive offence irrespective of non-participation of some of them in such
overt acts. The observations made by Wadhwa, J in Nalini at paragraph 583 and
by Mohapatra, J, in Firozuddin Basheeruddin vs. State of Kerala [2001 (7) SCC
596], are pressed into service to buttress his argument that all the
conspirators would be liable for all the offences committed pursuant to
the conspiracy on the basis of the principle of agency where the
conspiracy results in overt acts constituting distinct offences.
We do not think that the theory of agency can be extended thus far, that
is to say, to find all the conspirators guilty of the actual offences committed
in execution of the common design even if such offences were ultimately
committed by some of them, without the participation of others. We are of the
view that those who committed the offences pursuant to the conspiracy by
indulging in various overt acts will be individually liable for those offences
in addition to being liable for criminal conspiracy; but, the non-participant
conspirators cannot be found guilty of the offence or offences committed by the
other conspirators. There is hardly any scope for the application of the
principle of agency in order to find the conspirators guilty of a substantive
offence not committed by them. Criminal offences and punishments therefor are
governed by statute. The offender will be liable only if he comes within the
plain terms of the penal statute. Criminal liability for an offence cannot be
fastened by way of analogy or by extension of a common law principle. We have
to explain the decision in Ferojuddin's case at length in view of heavy
reliance placed on it. The Court observed thus at para 25:
"####BODY####5Thus, one who enters into a conspiratorial relationship is
liable for every reasonably foreseeable crime committed by every other member
of the conspiracy in furtherance of its objectives, whether or not he knew of the
crimes or aided in their commission####BODY####5"
In para 26, the discussion was on the point of admissibility of evidence
i.e. whether declaration by one conspirator made in furtherance of a conspiracy
and during its subsistence is admissible against each co-conspirator. In other
words, the question of applicability of the rule analogous to Section 10 of the
Evidence Act was the subject matter of discussion. The following passage from
Van Riper Vs. United States [13 F 2d 961 at page 967] was quoted. "Such
declarations are admitted upon no doctrine of the law of evidence, but of the
substantive law of crime. When men enter into an agreement for an unlawful end,
they become ad hoc agents for one another, and have made 'a partnership in
crime'. What one does pursuant to their common purpose, all do, and as
declarations may be such acts, they are competent against all."
Then, in the immediately following paragraph, this Court observed as
follows: "Thus conspirators are liable on an agency theory for statements
of co-conspirators, just as they are for the overt acts and crimes committed by
their confreres."
The conclusion at paragraph 27 that the conspirators are liable for the
overt acts and crimes committed by their associates on the theory of agency is
not in conformity with the discussion "Regarding admissibility of
evidence"7which is the opening phraseology of paragraph 26. It was made
clear in the second sentence of para 26 that contrary to the usual rule, any
declaration by one conspirator made in furtherance of a conspiracy and during
its pendency is admissible against each co-conspirator. Thus, the gist of
Section 10 of the Evidence Act is implicit in that observation. Nothing is
stated in paragraph 26 to indicate that their Lordships were discussing the larger
question of culpability of all the conspirators for the criminal acts done by
some of them pursuant to the conspiracy. However, the view expressed in
paragraph 27 that on the theory of agency, the conspirators are liable for the
statements and overt acts of the co-conspirators is at variance with the tenor
of discussion in the earlier para. The apparent reason which influenced their
Lordships seem to be the observations of Judge Hand in the case of Van Riper
Vs. United States (supra). Those observations were in the context of the
discussion on the liability of the 'defendants' for conspiracy to defraud. The
ratio of the decision is evident from the concluding observation: "For
this reason, all that was done before he entered may be used against him, but
obviously not what was done after he left." The joint liability for the
overt acts involved in the actual crime did not come up for consideration. That
apart, the statement of law that "such declarations are admitted upon no
doctrine of the law of evidence, but of the substantive law of crime" does
not hold good under Indian law. The reason is that the declarations
contemplated by Judge Hand
are made admissible under Section 10 of the Indian Evidence Act but not
under the substantive law of crimes. Thus, the conclusion reached at paragraph
27 overlooked the difference in legal position between what was obtaining in
USA in the year 1926 and the statutory rule of evidence contained in the Indian
Evidence Act. The proposition in the earlier para i.e. paragraph 25 (quoted
supra) was too widely stated, probably influenced by the observations in Van
Riper's case. In fact, in Ferojuddin's case, some members of the group who
conspired were convicted only under Section 120B whereas the other members who
accomplished the objective of conspiracy by committing the planned offence were
convicted for the substantive offence as well as for the conspiracy. Thus, the
observations made therein are no more than obiter dicta. The very decision of
Maj. E.G. Barsay referred to by their Lordships make it clear that "for
individual offences, all the conspirators may not be liable though they are all
guilty for the offence of conspiracy." In Ajay Aggarwal vs. Union of India
[1993 (3) SCC 609], while discussing the question whether the conspiracy is a
continuing offence, the following pertinent observations were made by K.
Ramaswamy, J, speaking for the Bench at para 11:
"Conspiracy to commit a crime itself is punishable as a substantive
offence and every individual offence committed pursuant to the conspiracy is
separate and distinct offence to which individual offenders are liable to
punishment, independent of the conspiracy."
Thus, a distinction was maintained between the conspiracy and the
offences committed pursuant to the conspiracy. It is only in order to prove the
existence of conspiracy and the parties to the conspiracy, a rule of evidence
is enacted in Section 10 based on the principle of agency. We may recall that
Section 10 of the Evidence Act provides that anything said, done or written by
one of the conspirators in reference to the common intention of all of them can
be proved as a relevant fact as against each of the conspirators, subject to
the condition prescribed in the opening part of the section. Thus, the evidence
which is in the nature of hearsay is made admissible on the principle that
there is mutual agency amongst the conspirators. It is in the context of
Section 10 that the relevant observations were made in the first Caveeshar case
(AIR 1957 SC 747) and Nalini's case at page 517. In the former case,
Jagannadhadas, J, after referring to the passage in Roscoe's Criminal Evidence
(16th Edn.) that "an overt act committed by any one of the conspirators is
sufficient, on the general principles of agency, to make it the act of
all", observed that "the principle underlying the reception of
evidence under Section 10 of the Evidence Act of the statements, acts and
writings of one co-conspirator as against the other is on the theory of
agency". It was not held in those cases that the same principle of agency
should be stretched further to make all the conspirators liable for the
offensive acts done pursuant to the conspiracy, irrespective of their role and
participation in the ultimate offensive acts. Whether or not the conspirators
will be liable for substantive offences other than the conspiracy and, if so,
to what extent and what punishment has to be given for the conspiracy and the
other offences committed pursuant thereto, depend on the specific scheme and
provisions of the penal law. The offence cannot be spelt out by applying the
principle of agency if the statute does not say so. For instance, in the case
of Section 34 IPC, the constructive liability for the crime is specifically
fastened on each of those who participate in the crime in furtherance of the
common intention. But Section 120B does not convey that idea.
Learned senior counsel Mr. Gopal Subramanium placed reliance on the
summary of legal position as to proof of conspiracy by Coleridge, J in Regina
vs. Murphy [(1837) 173 E.R. 502] which is as under: "####BODY####5I am
bound to tell you, that although the common design is the root of the charge,
it is not necessary to prove that these two parties came together and actually
agreed in terms to have this common design and to pursue it by common means,
and so to carry it into execution. This is not necessary, because in many cases
of the most clearly established conspiracies there are no means of proving any
such thing and neither law nor common
sense requires that it should be proved. If you find that these two
persons pursued by their acts the same object, often by the same means, one
performing one part of an act, so as to complete it, with a view to the
attainment of the object which they were pursuing, you will be at liberty to
draw the conclusion that they have been engaged in a conspiracy to effect that
object. The question you have to ask yourselves is, 'Had they this common
design, and did they pursue it by these common means 6 the design being
unlawful? .... "If you are satisfied that there was concert between them,
I am bound to say that being convinced of the conspiracy, it is not necessary
that you should find both Mr. Murphy and Mr. Douglas doing each particular act,
as after the fact of conspiracy is already established in your minds, whatever
is either said or done by either of the defendants in pursuance of the common
design, is, both in law and in common sense, to be considered as the acts of
both."
We do not find anything in Murphy's case which supports the argument
that all the conspirators are equally liable for the offence committed by some
of them in execution of the common design. The Court was only considering
whether the offence of conspiracy was made out and whether the acts or
declarations of co-conspirators can be relied on against others. The crucial
question formulated is: "Had they this common design and did they pursue
it by these common means 6 the design being unlawful? The learned Judge was
only explaining the ingredients of conspiracy and as to the principle on which
anything said or done by either of the conspirators in pursuit of common design
can be put against the other. In other words, the principle analogous to
Section 10 was being highlighted.
The other decision relied upon by the learned counsel for the State is
Babu Lal vs. Emperor (AIR 1938 PC 130) at page 133. What was held in that case
was that if several persons conspire to commit the offences and commit overt
acts pursuant to the conspiracy, such acts must be held to have been committed
in the course of the same transaction, which embraces the conspiracy and the
acts done under it. The Privy Council was concerned with the interpretation of
the expression "in the course of the same transaction" occurring in
Section 239(d) of the old Criminal Procedure Code which dealt with joinder of
charges. It does not support the argument based on the agency theory.
One point raised by Shri Ram Jethmalani based on the decision of House
of Lords in R Vs. Anderson [1985 2 All ER Page 961] remains to be considered.
The principle laid down in that case is discernible from the following summary
in the head note.
"Beyond the mere fact of agreement, the necessary mens rea for
proving that a person is guilty of conspiring to commit an offence under Section
1(1) of the Criminal Law Act 1977 is established if, and only if, it is shown
that he intended when he entered into the agreement to play some part in the
agreed course of conduct involving the commission of an offence. Furthermore, a
person may be guilty of conspiring even though he secretly intended to
participate in only part of the course of conduct involving the commission of
an offence."
The learned counsel submits that in order to sustain a charge of
conspiracy under Section 120A, the same test could be usefully applied. That
means, there must be evidence to the effect that the accused who entered into
the agreement in the nature of conspiracy had intended to play and played some
part in the agreed course of conduct involving the commission of an offence.
But, if there is no evidence attributing any role to the accused in the course
of conduct involving the commission of offence, he or she cannot be held guilty
under Section 120A. However, as rightly pointed out by the learned counsel for
the State Mr. Gopal Subramanium, the provision dealt with by the House of
Lords, namely, Section 1(1) of the Criminal Law Act, 1977 is different from the
wording of Section 120A. It reads as follows:
"Subject to the following provisions of this Part of this act, if
a person agrees with any other person or persons that a course of
conduct shall be pursued which will necessarily amount to or involve the
commission of any offence or offences by one or more of the parties to the
agreement if the agreement is carried out in accordance with their intentions,
he is guilty of conspiracy to commit the offence or offences in question."
It may be noted that by the 1977 Act, the offence of conspiracy at
common law was abolished and a statutory definition of 'conspiracy to commit the
offence' was enacted. The provision that was interpreted by the House of Lords
is not in pari materia with the provision in the Indian Penal Code. However,
one clarification is needed. If there is proof to the effect that the accused
played a role, attended to certain things or took steps consistent with the
common design underlying the conspiracy, that will go a long way in
establishing the complicity of the accused, though it is not a legal
requirement that the conspirator should do any particular act beyond the
agreement to commit the offence.
13. The interpretation of Section 27 of the Evidence Act has loomed
large in the course of arguments. The controversy centered round two aspects:-
(i) Whether the discovery of fact referred to in Section 27 should be confined
only to the discovery of a material object and the knowledge of the accused in
relation thereto or the discovery could be in respect of his mental state or
knowledge in relation to certain things 6 concrete or non-concrete.
(ii) Whether it is necessary that the discovery of fact should be by the
person making the disclosure or directly at his instance? The subsequent event
of discovery by police with the aid of information furnished by the accused 6
whether can be put against him under Section 27?
These issues have arisen especially in the context of the disclosure
statement (Ex. PW 66/13) of Gilani to the police. According to the prosecution,
the information furnished by Gilani on certain aspects, for instance, that the
particular cell phones belonged to the other accused 6 Afzal and Shaukat, that
the Christian colony room was arranged by Shaukat in order to accommodate the
slain terrorist Mohammad, that police uniforms and explosives 'were arranged'
and that the names of the five deceased terrorists were so and so are relevant
under Section 27 of the Evidence Act as they were confirmed to be true by
subsequent investigation and they reveal the awareness and knowledge of Gilani
in regard to all these facts, even though no material objects were recovered
directly at his instance.
The arguments of the learned counsel for the State run as follows:-
The expression "discovery of fact" should be read with the
definition of "fact" as contained in Section 3 of the Evidence Act
which defines the "fact" as 'meaning and including anything, state of
things or relation of things, capable of being perceived by the senses and also
includes any mental condition of which any person is conscious' (emphasis
supplied). Thus, the definition comprehends both physical things as well as
mental facts. Therefore, Section 27 can admit of discovery of a plain mental
fact concerning the informant- accused. In that sense, Section 27 will apply
whenever there is discovery (not in the narrower sense of recovery of a
material object) as long as the discovery amounts to be confirmatory in
character guaranteeing the truth of the information given7the only limitation
being that the police officer should not have had access to those facts
earlier.
The application of the Section is not contingent on the recovery of a
physical object. Section 27 embodies the doctrine of Confirmation by subsequent
events. The fact investigated and found by the police consequent to the
information disclosed by the accused amounts to confirmation of that piece of
information. Only that piece of information, which is distinctly supported by
confirmation, is rendered relevant and admissible U/S 27.
The physical object might have already been recovered, but the
investigating agency may not have any clue as to the "state of
things" that surrounded that physical object. In such an event, if upon
the disclosure made
such state of things or facts within his knowledge in relation to a
physical object are discovered, then also, it can be said to be discovery of
fact within the meaning of Section 27.
The other aspect is that the pointing out of a material object by the
accused himself is not necessary in order to attribute the discovery to him. A
person who makes a disclosure may himself lead the investigating officer to the
place where the object is concealed. That is one clear instance of discovery of
fact. But the scope of Section 27 is wider. Even if the accused does not point
out the place where the material object is kept, the police, on the basis of
information furnished by him, may launch an investigation which confirms the
information given by accused. Even in such a case, the information furnished by
the accused becomes admissible against him as per Section 27 provided the
correctness of information is confirmed by a subsequent step in investigation.
At the same time, facts discovered as a result of investigation should be such
as are directly relatable to the information.
Reliance is placed mainly on the decisions of this Court in Inayatullah
Vs. State of Maharashtra [(1976) 1 SCC 828] and State of Maharashtra Vs. Damu
[(2000) 6 SCC 269]. Referring to the land-mark decision of Privy Council in
Pulukuri Kotayya Vs. Emperor [AIR 1947 PC 67] the learned counsel Mr. Gopal
Subramanium tried to distinguish it and explain its real ratio.
The learned senior counsel appearing for the defence have contended that
the scope of Section 27 should not be unduly stretched by having resort to the
second part of the definition of 'fact' in Section 3 of the Evidence Act.
According to Mr. Ram Jethmalani, it is too late in the day to contend that the
'fact' discovered within the meaning of Section 27 could either be the physical
object or the mental fact of which the accused giving the information is
conscious. The learned counsel submits that on a true understanding of the
ratio of the opinion of the Privy Council in Kotayya's case, the word 'fact'
shall be construed as being a combination of both the elements. The fact
discovered, it was ruled by the Privy Council, was the physical fact of hidden
spear and the mental fact was that the accused knew that he had so hidden it at
a particular place. Great reliance was placed on the fact that in Kotayya's
case, the full Bench decision of the Lahore High Court in Sukhan Vs. Emperor
[AIR 1929 Lahore 344] and the division Bench decision of the Bombay High Court
in Ganuchandra Vs. Emperor [AIR 1932 Bombay 286] were specifically approved by
the Privy Council. It is pointed out that Section 27 is virtually borrowed from
Taylor's treatise on the Law of Evidence as pointed out by the full Bench of
the Allahabad High Court in the vintage decision in Queen Empress Vs. Babu Lal
[1884, Indian Decisions, 6 Allahabad 510]. The passage in Taylor's Evidence
(which is found in paragraph 902 of Volume 1 of 1931 Edition) is as follows:
"902. (i). When, in consequence of information unduly obtained from
the prisoner, the property stolen, or the instrument of the crime, or the body
of the person murdered, or any other material fact, has been discovered, proof
is admissible that such discovery was made conformably with the information so
obtained. The prisoner's statement about his knowledge of the place where the
property or other article was to be found, being thus confirmed by the fact, is
shown to be true, and not to have been fabricated in consequence of any
inducement. It is, therefore, competent to prove that the prisoner stated that
the thing would be found by searching a particular place, and that it was
accordingly so found, but it would not, in such a case of a confession
improperly obtained, be competent to inquire whether he confessed that the had
concealed it there. So much of the confession as relates distinctly to the fact
discovered by it may be given in evidence, as this part at least of the statement
cannot have been false."
It is therefore contended that the fact discovered must basically be a
concrete or material fact but not mental fact. The learned counsel Mr. Ram
Jethmalani further submits that the word 'discovery' had two shades of meaning:
one is 'find and detect' and the other is 'to uncover or reveal' vide
'Dictionary of Modern Legal Usage' by Bryan A. Garner. Though the first of the
meanings viz., 'to uncover or reveal' has become obsolete according to Garner,
still, the expression 'discover' should be construed according to its original
sense when the Indian Evidence Act was framed. It is therefore submitted that
the discovery of a physical thing by the accused is a must. The doctrine of
confirmation by subsequent events which is the expression used in some of the
cases and text books only means that the discovery of the material object is
subsequent to the information leading to discovery. The learned counsel
reinforces his argument by stating that in the context and setting of Section
27 and in the company of the word 'discover', fact only means the object, its
location and concealment. The entire definition of 'fact' should not be bodily
lifted into Section 27. The fact discovered is the concealment or disposal of
the object which is brought to light by the accused, but not anything relating
to the object in general. All the learned counsel for the defence then stressed
on the expression 'thereby discovered' which means discovered pursuant to
information which he himself supplied. Countering the argument of the learned
senior counsel for the State, the learned counsel for the accused then contend
that the information and the discovery of fact should be intimately and
inextricably connected and the confirmation by means of subsequent investigation
cannot be considered to be discovery of fact as a direct result of information
furnished by the accused. Apart from Kotayya's case, heavy reliance is placed
on the judgment of Privy Council in Kotayya's case. We have noticed above that
the confessions made to a police officer and a confession made by any person
while he or she is in police custody cannot be proved against that person
accused of an offence. Of course, a confession made in the immediate presence
of a Magistrate can be proved against him. So also Section 162 Cr.P.C. bars the
reception of any statements made to a police officer in the course of an
investigation as evidence against the accused person at any enquiry or trial
except to the extent that such statements can be made use of by the accused to
contradict the witnesses. Such confessions are excluded for the reason that
there is a grave risk of their statements being involuntary and false. Section
27, which unusually starts with a proviso, lifts the ban against the
admissibility of the confession/statement made to the police to a limited
extent by allowing proof of information of specified nature furnished by the
accused in police custody. In that sense Section 27 is considered to be an
exception to the rules embodied in Sections 25 and 26 (vide AIR 1962 SC 1116).
Section 27 reads as follows:
27. How much of information received from accused may be proved7Provided
that, when any fact is deposed to as discovered in consequence of information
received from a person accused of any offence, in the custody of a police
officer, so much of such information, whether it amounts to a confession or
not, as relates distinctly to the fact thereby discovered, may be proved.
The history of case law on the subject of confessions under Section 27
unfolds divergent views and approaches. The divergence was mainly on twin
aspects: (i) Whether the facts contemplated by Section 27 are physical,
material objects or the mental facts of which the accused giving the
information could be said to be aware of. Some Judges have gone to the extent
of holding that the discovery of concrete facts, that is to say material
objects, which can be exhibited in the Court are alone covered by Section 27.
(ii) The other controversy was on the point regarding the extent of admissibility
of a disclosure statement. In some cases a view was taken that any information,
which served to connect the object with the offence charged, was admissible
under Section 27. The decision of the Privy Council in Kotayya's case, which
has been described as a locus classicus, had set at rest much of the
controversy that centered round the interpretation of Section 27. To a great
extent the legal position has got crystallized with the rendering of this
decision. The authority of Privy Council's decision has not been questioned in
any of the decisions of the highest Court either in the pre or post
independence era. Right from 1950s, till the advent of the new century and till
date, the passages in this famous decision are being approvingly quoted and
reiterated by the Judges of this apex Court. Yet, there remain certain grey
areas as demonstrated by the arguments advanced on behalf of the State.
The first requisite condition for utilizing Section 27 in support of the
prosecution case is that the investigating police officer should depose that he
discovered a fact in consequence of the information received from an accused
person in police custody. Thus, there must be a discovery of fact not within
the knowledge of police officer as a consequence of information received. Of
course, it is axiomatic that the information or disclosure should be free from
any element of compulsion. The next component of Section 27 relates to the
nature and extent of information that can be proved. It is only so much of the
information as relates distinctly to the fact thereby discovered that can be
proved and nothing more. It is explicitly clarified in the Section that there
is no taboo against receiving such information in evidence merely because it
amounts to a confession. At the same time, the last clause makes it clear that
it is not the confessional part that is admissible but it is only such
information or part of it, which relates distinctly to the fact discovered by
means of the information furnished. Thus, the information conveyed in the
statement to police ought to be dissected if necessary so as to admit only the
information of the nature mentioned in the Section. The rationale behind this
provision is that, if a fact is actually discovered in consequence of the
information supplied, it affords some guarantee that the information is true
and can therefore be safely allowed to be admitted in evidence as an
incriminating factor against the accused. As pointed out by the Privy Council
in Kotayya's case, "clearly the extent of the information admissible must
depend on the exact nature of the fact discovered and the information must
distinctly relate to that fact". Elucidating the scope of this Section,
the Privy Council speaking through Sir John Beaumont said "normally, the
Section is brought into operation when a person in police custody produces from
some place of concealment, some object, such as a dead body, a weapon or
ornaments, said to be connected with the crime of which the informant is the
accused". We have emphasized the word 'normally' because the illustrations
given by the learned Judge are not exhaustive. The next point to be noted is
that the Privy Council rejected the argument of the counsel appearing for the
Crown that the fact discovered is the physical object produced and that any and
every information which relates distinctly to that object can be proved. Upon
this view, the information given by a person that the weapon produced is the
one used by him in the commission of the murder will be admissible in its entirety.
Such contention of the Crown's counsel was emphatically rejected with the
following words: "####BODY####5If this be the effect of Section 27, little
substance would remain in the ban imposed by the two preceding sections on
confessions made to the police, or by persons in police custody. That ban was
presumably inspired by the fear of the Legislature that a person under police
influence might be induced to confess by the exercise of undue pressure. But if
all that is required to lift the ban be the inclusion in the confession of
information relating to an object subsequently produced, it seems reasonable to
suppose that the persuasive powers of the police will prove equal to the
occasion, and that in practice the ban will lose its effect####BODY####5"
Then, their Lordships proceeded to give a lucid exposition of the
expression 'fact discovered' in the following passage, which is quoted time and
again by this Court:
"####BODY####5In their Lordships' view it is fallacious to treat
the 'fact discovered' within the section as equivalent to the object produced;
the fact discovered embraces the place from which the object is produced and
the knowledge of the accused as to this, and the information given must relate
distinctly to this fact. Information as to past user, or the past history, of
the object produced is not related to its discovery in the setting in which it
is discovered. Information supplied by a person in custody that "I will
produce a knife concealed in the roof of my house" does not lead to the
discovery of a knife; knives were discovered many years ago. It leads to the
discovery of the fact that a knife is concealed in the house of the informant
to his knowledge, and if the knife is proved to have been used in the
commission of the offence, the fact discovered is very relevant. But if to the
statement the words be added "with which I stabbed A" these words are
inadmissible since they do not relate to the discovery of the knife in the
house of the informant." (emphasis supplied).
The approach of the Privy Council in the light of the above exposition
of law can best be understood by referring to the statement made by one of the
accused to the police officer. It reads thus:
"####BODY####5About 14 days ago, I, Kotayya and people of my party
lay in wait for Sivayya and others at about sunset time at the corner of
Pulipad tank. We, all beat Beddupati China Sivayya and Subayya, to death. The
remaining persons, Pullayya, Kotayya and Narayana ran away. Dondapati Ramayya
who was in our party received blows on his hands. He had a spear in his hands.
He gave it to me then. I hid it and my stick in the rick of Venkatanarasu in
the village. I will show if you come. We did all this at the instigation of
Pulukuri Kotayya."
The Privy Council held that "the whole of that statement except the
passage 'I hid it' (a spear) and my stick in the rick of Venkatanarasu in the
village. I will show if you come" is inadmissible. There is another
important observation at paragraph 11 which needs to be noticed. The Privy
Council explained the probative force of the information made admissible under
Section 27 in the following words:
"####BODY####5Except in cases in which the possession, or
concealment, of an object constitutes the gist of the offence charged, it can
seldom happen that information relating to the discovery of a fact forms the
foundation of the prosecution case. It is only one link in the chain of proof,
and the other links must be forged in manner allowed by law."
In paragraph 11, their Lordships observed that they were in agreement
with the view taken by the High Courts of Lahore and Bombay in Sukhan Vs.
Emperor [AIR 1929 Lahore 344] and Ganuchandra Vs. Emperor [AIR 1932 Bombay
286]. The contrary view taken by the Madras High Court in Attappa Goundan Vs.
Emperor [ILR 1937 Madras 695] was not accepted by the Privy Council. In Attappa
Goundan's case, the High Court held that even that part of the confessional
statement, which revealed the connection between the objects produced and the
commission of murder was held to be admissible under Section 27 in its
entirety. This approach was criticized by the Privy Council. To complete the
sequence, we may refer to another decision of the Madras High Court in Emperor
Vs., Ramanuja Ayyangar [AIR 1935 Madras 528]. In that case, the majority of
learned Judges had disagreed with the view taken in Sukhan's case that the
expression 'fact' in Section 27 should be restricted to material objects or
something which can be exhibited as material object. It was held that the facts
need not be self-probatory and the word 'fact' as contemplated by Section 27 is
not limited to "actual physical material object". Emphasis was laid
on the wording 'any fact'. In this respect, the view taken in Sukhan's case
(supra) was dissented from. The minority view was that the discovery of a
witness to the crime or the act of the accused in purchasing the incriminating
material cannot be proved by invoking Section 27. We have referred to this
decision in Ramanuja Ayyangar's case for the reason that the expression 'fact'
was given a wider meaning in this case7 which is the meaning now sought to be
given by Mr. Gopal Subramnium. In Attappa Goundan's case, the connotation of
the word 'fact' i.e. whether it can be restricted to a material object was not
specifically dealt with. The reason for referring to these two decisions of
Madras High Court rendered before Kotayya's case becomes evident when we advert
to the decision of this Court in Omprakash [(1972) 1 SCC 249] a little later.
We retrace our discussion to Kotayya's case for a while. Sir John
Beaumont who gave the opinion of the Privy Council in that case, was the Judge
who spoke for the Division Bench in Ganuchandra's case [AIR 1932 Bombay 286].
In that case, the learned Judge observed7"the fact discovered within the meaning
of that Section must I think be some concrete fact to which the information
directly relates, and in this case, such fact is the production of certain
property which had been concealed". This is also the view taken by Shadi
Lal, CJ who expressed the opinion of the majority in Sukhan's case wherein the
learned Judge held that the phrase 'fact discovered' refers to a material and
not to a mental fact. It was further elucidated by saying that "the fact
discovered may be the stolen property, the instrument of the crime, a corpus of
a person murdered or any other material thing; or it may be a material thing in
relation to the place or locality where it is found". On the facts of the
case, it was pointed out that "the fact discovered is not the 'karas' simplicitor
but the 'karas' being found in the possession of Alladin. The information to be
admitted must relate distinctly to the latter. Thus, both in Sukhan's case and
Ganuchandra's case which were approved by the Privy Council, two questions
arose for consideration (a) whether Section 27 was confined to physical objects
and (b) as to the extent of information that was admissible under Section 27.
Mr. Gopal Subramanium is right in his submission that the only point of
controversy in Kotayya's case related to the extent of information that becomes
admissible under Section 27 and it was with reference to that aspect the view
taken in Sukhan and Ganuchandra were approved, though it was not said so in
specific words. The other question as regards the exact meaning and import of
the expression 'discovery of fact' was not considered. Where a physical object
was discovered in consequence of the information furnished, which part of that
information/statement becomes relevant was the line of inquiry before the Privy
Council. No doubt, the illustrations given coupled with the fact that the same
learned Judge took a particular view on this aspect in Ganuchandra's case may
lead to an impression that the learned Judges of the Privy Council understood
the expression 'fact' primarily in the sense of material object but, as
observed already, the illustrations given are not exhaustive.
We are of the view that Kotayya's case is an authority for the
proposition that 'discovery of fact' cannot be equated to the object produced
or found. It is more than that. The discovery of fact arises by reason of the
fact that the information given by the accused exhibited the knowledge or the
mental awareness of the informant as to its existence at a particular place.
We now turn our attention to the precedents of this Court which followed
the track of Kotayya's case. The ratio of the decision in Kotayya's case
reflected in the underlined passage extracted supra was highlighted in several
decisions of this Court.
The crux of the ratio in Kotayya's case was explained by this Court in
State of Maharashtra vs. Damu. Thomas J. observed that "the decision of
the Privy Council in Pulukuri Kotayya vs. Emperor is the most quoted authority
for supporting the interpretation that the "fact discovered"
envisaged in the section embraces the place from which the object was produced,
the knowledge of the accused as to it, but the information given must relate
distinctly to that effect". In Mohmed Inayatullah vs. The State of Maharashtra
[(1976) 1 SCC 828], Sarkaria J. while clarifying that the expression "fact
discovered" in Section 27 is not restricted to a physical or material fact
which can be perceived by the senses, and that it does include a mental fact,
explained the meaning by giving the gist of what was laid down in Pulukuri
Kotayya's case. The learned Judge, speaking for the Bench observed thus:
"Now it is fairly settled that the expression "fact
discovered" includes not only the physical object produced, but also the
place from which it is produced and the knowledge of the accused as to this
(see Pulukuri Kotayya v. Emperor; Udai Bhan v. State of Uttar Pradesh)"
So also in Udai Bhan vs. State of Uttar Pradesh [AIR 1962 SC 1116].
Raghubar Dayal, J. after referring to Kotayya's case stated the legal position
as follows:
"A discovery of a fact includes the object found, the place from
which it is produced and the knowledge of the accused as to its
existence."
The above statement of law does not run counter to the contention of Mr.
Ram Jethmalani, that the factum of discovery combines both the physical object
as well as the mental consciousness of the informant-accused in relation
thereto. However, what would be the position if the physical object was not
recovered at the instance of the accused was not discussed in any of these
cases.
There is almost a direct decision of this Court in which the connotation
of the expression "fact" occurring in Section 27 was explored and a
view similar to Sukhan's case was taken on the supposition that the said view
was approved by the Privy Council in Kotayya's case. That decision is7Himachal
Pradesh Administration vs. Om Prakash [(1972) 1 SCC 249]. In that case, on the
basis of information furnished by the accused to the Police Officer that he had
purchased the weapon from a witness (PW11) and that he would take the Police to
him, the Police went to the Thari of PW11 where the accused pointed out PW11 to
the Police. It was contended on behalf of the accused that the information that
he purchased the dagger from PW11 followed by his leading the Police to the
Thari and pointing him out was inadmissible under Section 27 of the Evidence
Act. This argument was accepted. Jaganmohan Reddy, J. speaking for the Court
observed thus: "In our view there is force in this contention. A fact
discovered within the meaning of Section 27 must refer to a material fact to
which the information directly relates. In order to render the information
admissible the fact discovered must be relevant and must have been such that it
constitutes the information through which the discovery was made. What is the
fact discovered in this case?. Not the dagger but the dagger hid under the
stone which is not known to the Police (see Pulukuri Kotayya and others v. King
Emperor). But thereafter can it be said that the information furnished by the
accused that he purchased the dagger from PW11 led to a fact discovered when
the accused took the police to the Thari of PW11 and pointed him out"
The learned Judge then referred to the decision of Madras High Court in
Emperor vs. Ramanuja Ayyangar [AIR 1935 Mad 528] which held that the
information relating to the purchase from the pointed shop and its carriage by
a witness pointed out was admissible. Reference was then made to the law laid
down in Athappa Goundan's case [AIR 1937 Mad 618] and observed that "this
view was overruled by the Privy Council in Pulukuri Kotayya's case"
(supra).
The passage in Sukhan's case was then approvingly referred to and the
law was enunciated as follows:
"In the Full Bench Judgment of Seven Judges in Sukhan vs. the
Crown, which was approved by the Privy Council in Pulkuri Kotayya's case, Shadi
Lal, C.J., as he then was speaking for the majority pointed out that the
expression 'fact' as defined by Section 3 of the Evidence Act includes not only
the physical fact which can be perceived by the senses but also the
psychological fact or mental condition of which any person is conscious and
that it is in the former sense that the word used by the Legislature refers to a
material and not to a mental fact. It is clear therefore that what should be
discovered is the material fact and the information that is admissible is that
which has caused that discovery so as to connect the information and the fact
with each other as the 'cause and effect'. That information which does not
distinctly connect with the fact discovered or that portion of the information
which merely explains the material thing discovered is not admissible under
Section 27 and cannot be proved".
The following observations are also crucial.
"As explained by this Court as well as by the Privy Council,
normally Section 27 is brought into operation where a person in police custody
produces from some place of concealment some object said to be connected with
the crime of which the informant is the accused. the concealment of the fact
which is not known to the police is what is discovered by the information and
lends assurance that the information was true. No witness with whom some
material fact, such as the weapon of murder, stolen property or other
incriminating article is not hidden sold or kept and which is unknown to the
Police can be said to be discovered as a consequence of the information
furnished by the accused. These examples however are only by way of illustration
and are not exhaustive. What makes the information leading to the discovery of
the witness admissible is the discovery from him of the thing sold to him or
hidden or kept with him which the police did not know until the information was
furnished to them by the accused. A witness cannot be said to be discovered if
nothing is to be found or recovered from him as a consequence of the
information furnished by the accused and the information which disclosed the
identity of the witness will not be admissible".
Then follows the statement of law: "But even apart from the
admissibility of the information under Section 27, the evidence of the
Investigating Officer and the panchas that the accused had taken them to PW11
and pointed him out and as corroborated by PW11 himself would be admissible
under Section 8 of the Evidence Act as conduct of the accused".
In an earlier paragraph, the Court stressed the need to exercise
necessary caution and care so as to be assured of the credibility of the
information furnished and the fact discovered.
Confronted with this decision which affirms the law laid down in
Sukhan's case (supra), and which militates against the contention advanced by
the prosecution, the learned senior counsel Mr. Gopal Subramanium has
questioned the correctness and the binding authority of this judgment. Firstly,
according to him, the judgment was based on certain wrong assumptions and,
secondly, it is pointed out that in the light of the later decisions, the
enunciation of law in Om Prakash case does not hold good.
In regard to the first point of criticism, the learned counsel Mr. Gopal
Subramanium contended as follows:
"OM PRAKASH was delivered on the basis that Sukhan had been
approved in Pulukuri Kotayya, and the contrary view had been rejected by the
Privy Council. It is submitted that the very basis of the decision in Om
Prakash was incorrect. It is submitted that a reading of para 13 of the
judgment indicates that the ratio in Athapa Goundan and Ramanuja Ayyangar were
perceived to be similar and it is on this assumption this Court held that
mental facts are not admissible in evidence under Section 27. The Court failed
to note that Ramanuja Ayyangar dealt with the admissibility of mental facts
which was not under consideration before the Privy Council in Pulukuri Kottaya.
Athapa Goundan which dealt with the question of extent of admissibility was
considered by the Privy Council and overruled."
We find considerable force in this criticism. However, this criticism
does not justify a departure from the view taken by a coordinate Bench of this
Court, unless we categorize it as a decision rendered per incuriam. It is not
possible to hold so. In fact, as pointed out by Mr. Ram Jethmalani, the said
interpretation of expression 'fact' placed in Om Prakash (supra) and in some
other decisions of the pre-independence days, is in conformity with the opinion
of TAYLOR (quoted supra) which had apparently inspired the drafters of the
Indian Evidence Act. But that is not to say that the legal position canvassed
by Mr. Gopal Subramanium is not a reasonably possible one. However, we are
handicapped in approaching the issue independently, unfettered by the decision
in OM PRAKASH case.
We may add that in the case of Eerabhadrappa Vs. State of Karnataka
[(1983) 2 SCC 330] A.P. Sen, J. speaking for the Bench observed that the word
'fact' in Section 27 "means some concrete or material fact to which the
information directly relates". Then his Lordship quoted the famous passage
in Kotayya's case. However, there was no elaboration.
The next endeavour of Mr. Gopal Subramanium was to convince us that the
precedential force of the judgment in OM PRAKASH has been considerably eroded
by the subsequent pronouncements. Two decisions have been cited to substantiate
his contention. They are: Mohd. Inayatullah vs. State of Maharashtra (supra)
and State of Maharashtra vs. Damu (supra). We do not think that in any of these
decisions 'discovery of fact' was held to comprehend a pure and simple mental
fact or state of mind relating to a physical object dissociated from the
recovery of the physical object. Let us revert back to the decision in Mohd.
Inayatullah's case. The first sentence in paragraph 13 of the following passage
which has already been referred to is relied on by the learned senior counsel
for the State. "At one time it was held that the expression "fact
discovered" in the section is restricted to a physical or material fact
which can be perceived by the senses, and that it does not include a mental
fact (see Sukhan V. Crown; Rex V. Ganee). Now it is fairly settled that the
expression "fact discovered" includes not only the physical object
produced, but also the place from which it is produced and the knowledge of the
accused as to this (see Palukuri Kotayya v. Emperor; Udai Bhan v. State of
Uttar Pradesh)"
The first sentence read with the second sentence in the above passage
would support the contention of Mr. Ram Jethmalani that the word 'fact'
embraces within its fold both the physical object as well as the mental element
in relation thereto. This ruling in Inayatullah does not support the argument
of the State's counsel that Section 27 admits of a discovery of a plain mental
fact irrespective of the discovery of physical fact. The conclusion reached in
Inayatullah's case is revealing. The three fold fact discovered therein was: a)
the chemical drums, (b) the place i.e. the musafir khana wherein they lay in
deposit and (c) the knowledge of the accused of such deposit. The accused took
the police to the place of deposit and pointed out the drums. That portion of
the information was found admissible under Section 27. The rest of the
statement namely "which I took out from the Hazibundar of first
accused" was eschewed for the reason that it related to the past history
of the drums or their theft by the accused.
Let us see how far Damu's case supports the contention of Mr. Gopal
Subramanium. At the outset, we may point out that Damu's case did not lay down
any legal proposition beyond what was said in Kotayya's case. The statement of
law in Kotayya that the fact discovered "embraces the place from which the
object is produced and the knowledge of the accused as to it and the
information given must relate distinctly to this fact" was reiterated
without any gloss or qualification. In that case, A3 disclosed to the
investigating officer that "Deepak's dead body was carried by me and
Guruji (A2) on his motor cycle and thrown in the canal". The said
statement of A3 was not found admissible in evidence by the High Court as the
dead body was not recovered pursuant to the disclosure made. This Court however
took a different view and held that the said statement was admissible under
Section 27. It was held so in the light of the facts mentioned in paragraphs 34
& 37. These are the facts: when an offer was made by A3 that he would point
out the spot, he was taken to the spot and there the I.O. found a broken piece
of glass lying on the ground which was picked up by him. A motor cycle was
recovered from the house of A2 and its tail lamp was found broken. The broken
glass piece recovered from the spot matched with and fitted into the broken
tail lamp. With these facts presented to the Court, the learned Judges after
referring to Kotayya's case, reached the following conclusion in paragraph 37.
"How did the particular information lead to the discovery of the fact? No
doubt, recovery of dead body of Dipak from the same canal was antecedent to the
information which PW44 obtained. If nothing more was recovered pursuant to and
subsequent to obtaining the information from the accused, there would not have
been any discovery of any fact at all. But when the broken glass piece was
recovered from that spot and that piece was found to be part of the tail lamp
of the motorcycle of A2 Guruji, it can safely be held that the investigating
officer discovered the fact that A2 Guruji had carried the dead body on that
particular motorcycle up to the spot". (emphasis supplied)
The events highlighted in the case speak for themselves and reveal the
rationale of that decision. The view taken in Damu's case does not make any
dent on the observations made and the legal position spelt out in Om Prakash
case. The High Court rightly distinguished Damu's case because there was
discovery of a related physical object at least in part.
The decision in Pandurang Kalu Patil Vs. State of Maharashtra [(2002) 2
SCC 490] was also cited by the counsel for the State. We do not think that the
prosecution can derive assistance from what was laid down in that judgment. The
legal position enunciated in P. Kotayya's case was only reiterated in a little
different language. It was observed that "recovery, or even production of
object by itself need not necessarily result in discovery of a fact. That is
why Sir John Beaumont said in Pulukuri Kotayya that it is fallacious to treat
the 'fact discovered' within the Section as equivalent to the object
produced".
We need not delve further into this aspect as we are of the view that
another ingredient of the Section, namely, that the information provable should
relate distinctly to the fact thereby discovered is not satisfied, as we see
later. When we refer to the circumstances against some of the accused. There is
one more point which we would like to discuss i.e. whether pointing out a
material object by the accused furnishing the information is a necessary
concomitant of Section 27. We think that the answer should be in the negative.
Though in most of the cases the person who makes the disclosure himself leads
the Police Officer to the place where an object is concealed and points out the
same to him, however, it is not essential that there should be such pointing
out in order to make the information admissible under Section 27. It could very
well be that on the basis of information furnished by the accused, the Investigating
Officer may go to the spot in the company of other witnesses and recover the
material object. By doing so, the Investigating Officer will be discovering a
fact viz., the concealment of an incriminating article and the knowledge of the
accused furnishing the information about it. In other words, where the
information furnished by the person in custody is verified by the Police
Officer by going to the spot mentioned by the informant and finds it to be
correct, that amounts to discovery of fact within the meaning of Section 27. Of
course, it is subject to the rider that the information so furnished was the
immediate and proximate cause of discovery. If the Police Officer chooses not
to take the informant- accused to the spot, it will have no bearing on the
point of admissibility under Section 27, though it may be one of the aspects
that goes into evaluation of that particular piece of evidence.
How the clause7"as relates distinctly to the fact thereby
discovered" has to be understood is the next point that deserves
consideration. The interpretation of this clause is not in doubt. Apart from
Kotayya's case, various decisions of this Court have elucidated and clarified
the scope and meaning of the said portion of Section 27. The law has been
succinctly stated in Inayatullah's case (supra). Sarkaria, J. analyzed the
ingredients of the Section and explained the ambit and nuances of this
particular clause in the following words:
"..The last but the most important condition is that only "so
much of the information" as relates distinctly to the fact thereby
discovered is admissible. The rest of the information has to be excluded. The
word 'distinctly' means 'directly', 'indubitably', 'strictly', 'unmistakably'.
The word has been advisedly used to limit and define the scope of the provable
information. The phrase 'distinctly relates to the fact thereby discovered' is
the linchpin of the provision. This phrase refers to that part of the
information supplied by the accused which is the direct and immediate cause of
the discovery. The reason behind this partial lifting of the ban against
confessions and statements made to the police, is that if a fact is actually
discovered in consequence of information given by the accused, it affords some
guarantee of truth of that part, and that part only, of the information which
was the clear, immediate and proximate cause of the discovery. No such
guarantee or assurance attaches to the rest of the statement which may be
indirectly or remotely related to the fact discovered."
In the light of the legal position thus clarified, this Court excluded a
part of the disclosure statement to which we have already adverted. In Bodhraj
Vs. State of J & K [(2002) 8 SCC 45] this Court after referring to the
decisions on the subject observed thus: "####BODY####5The words "so
much of such information", as relates distinctly to the fact thereby
discovered are very important and the whole force of the section concentrates
on them. Clearly the extent of the information admissible must depend on the
exact nature of the fact discovered to which such information is required to
relate####BODY####5"
14. Joint disclosures
Before parting with the discussion on the subject of confessions under
Section 27, we may briefly refer to the legal position as regards joint
disclosures. This point assumes relevance in the context of such disclosures
made by the first two accused viz. Afzal and Shaukat. The admissibility of
information said to have been furnished by both of them leading to the
discovery of the hideouts of the deceased terrorists and the recovery of a
laptop computer, a mobile phone and cash of Rs. 10 lacs from the truck in which
they were found at Srinagar is in issue. Learned senior counsel Mr. Shanti
Bhushan and Mr. Sushil Kumar appearing for the accused contend, as was
contended before the High Court, that the disclosure and pointing out
attributed to both cannot fall within the Ken of Section 27, whereas it is the
contention of Mr. Gopal Subramanium that there is no taboo against the
admission of such information as incriminating evidence against both the
informants/accused. Some of the High Courts have taken the view that the
wording "a person" excludes the applicability of the Section to more
than one person. But, that is too narrow a view to be taken. Joint
disclosures7to be more accurate, simultaneous disclosures, per se, are not
inadmissible under Section 27. 'A person accused' need not necessarily be a
single person, but it could be plurality of accused. It seems to us that the
real reason for not acting upon the joint disclosures by taking resort to
Section 27 is the inherent difficulty in placing reliance on such information
supposed to have emerged from the mouths of two or more accused at a time. In
fact, joint or simultaneous disclosure is a myth, because two or more accused
persons would not have uttered informatory words in a chorus. At best, one
person would have made the statement orally and the other person would have
stated so substantially in similar terms a few seconds or minutes later, or the
second person would have given unequivocal nod to what has been said by the
first person. Or, two persons in custody may be interrogated separately and
simultaneously and both of them may furnish similar information leading to the
discovery of fact. Or, in rare cases, both the accused may reduce the
information into writing and hand over the written notes to the police officer
at the same time. We do not think that such disclosures by two or more persons
in police custody go out of the purview of Section 27 altogether. If
information is given one after the other without any break7almost
simultaneously, and if such information is followed up by pointing out the
material thing by both of them, we find no good reason to eschew such evidence
from the regime of Section 27. However, there may be practical difficulties in
placing reliance on such evidence. It may be difficult for the witness
(generally the police officer), to depose which accused spoke what words and in
what sequence. In other words, the deposition in regard to the information
given by the two accused may be exposed to criticism from the stand point of
credibility and its nexus with discovery. Admissibility and credibility are two
distinct aspects, as pointed out by Mr. Gopal Subramanium. Whether and to what
extent such a simultaneous disclosure could be relied upon by the Court is
really a matter of evaluation of evidence. With these prefaratory remarks, we
have to refer to two decisions of this Court which are relied upon by the
learned defence counsel.
In Mohd. Abdul Hafeez vs. State of Andhra Pradesh [AIR 1983 SC 367], the
prosecution sought to rely on the evidence that the appellant along with the
other two accused gave information to the IO that the ring (MO 1) was sold to
the jeweller7PW3 in whose possession the ring was. PW3 deposed that four
accused persons whom he identified in the Court came to his shop and they sold
the ring for Rs.325/- and some days later, the Police Inspector accompanied by
accused 1, 2 and 3 came to his shop and the said accused asked PW3 to produce
the ring which they had sold. Then, he took out the ring from the showcase and
it was seized by the Police Inspector. The difficulty in accepting such
evidence was projected in the following words by D.A. Desai, J. speaking for
the Court: "Does this evidence make any sense? He says that accused 1 to 4
sold him the ring. He does not say who had the ring and to whom he paid the
money. Similarly, he stated that accused 1 to 3 asked him to produce the ring.
It is impossible to believe that all spoke simultaneously. This way of
recording evidence is most unsatisfactory and we record our disapproval of the
same. If evidence otherwise confessional in character is admissible under
Section 27 of the Indian Evidence Act, it is obligatory upon the Investigating
Officer to state and record who gave the information; when he is dealing with
more than one accused, what words were used by him so that a recovery pursuant
to the information received may be connected to the person giving the
information so as to provide incriminating evidence against the person".
There is nothing in this judgment which suggests that simultaneous
disclosures by more than one accused do not at all enter into the arena of
Section 27, as a proposition of law.
Another case which needs to be noticed is the case of Ramkishan vs.
Bombay State [AIR 1955 SC 104]. The admissibility or otherwise of joint
disclosures did not directly come up for consideration in that case. However,
while distinguishing the case of Gokuldas Dwarkadas decided by Bombay High
Court, a passing observation was made that in the said case the High Court
"had rightly held that a joint statement by more than one accused was not
contemplated by Section 27". We cannot understand this observation as
laying down the law that information almost simultaneously furnished by two
accused in regard to a fact discovered cannot be received in evidence under
Section 27. It may be relevant to mention that in the case of Lachhman Singh
vs. The State [1952 SCR 839] this Court expressed certain reservations on the
correctness of the view taken by some of the High Courts discountenancing the
joint disclosures.
15. CALL RECORDS7PROOF AND AUTHENTICITY
It is contended by Mr. Shanti Bhushan, appearing for the accused Shaukat
that the call records relating to the cellular phone No. 919811573506 said to
have been used by Shaukat have not been proved as per the requirements of law
and their genuineness is in doubt. The call records relating to the other
mobile numbers related to Gilani and Afzal are also subjected to the same
criticism. It is the contention of the learned counsel that in the absence of a
certificate issued under sub-Section (2) of Section 65B of the Evidence Act
with the particulars enumerated in clauses (a) to (e), the information
contained in the electronic record cannot be adduced in evidence and in any
case in the absence of examination of a competent witness acquainted with the
functioning of the computers during the relevant time and the manner in which
the printouts were taken, even secondary evidence under Section 63 is not
admissible.
Two witnesses were examined to prove the printouts of the computerized
record furnished by the cellular service providers namely AIRTEL (Bharti
Cellular Limited) and ESSAR Cellphone. The call details of the mobile No.
9811573506 (which was seized from Shaukat's house) are contained in Exhibits
36/1 to 36/2. The covering letters signed by the Nodal Officer of Sterling
Cellular Limited are Ext.P36/6 and P36/7 bearing the dates 13th & 18th
December respectively. The call details of mobile No. 9811489429 attributed to
Afzal are contained in Ext.P36/3 and the covering letter addressed to the
Inspector (Special Cell)7PW66 signed by the Nodal Officer is Ext.36/5. The call
details of 9810081228 belonging to the subscriber SAR Gilani are contained in
Exts. 35/8. The above two phones were obtained on cash card basis. The covering
letter pertaining thereto and certain other mobile numbers was signed by the
Security Manager of Bharti Cellular Limited. The call details relating to
another cellphone number 9810693456 pertaining to Mohammed is Ext.35/5.
These documents i.e. Ext.35 series were filed by PW35 who is the person
that signed the covering letter dated 17th December bearing Ext.35/1. PW35
deposed that "all the call details are computerized sheets obtained from
the computer". He clarified that "the switch which is maintained in
the computer in respect of each telephone receives the signal of the telephone
number, called or received and serves them to the Server and it is the Server
which keeps the record of the calls made or received. In case where call is
made and the receiver does not pick up the phone, the server which makes a loop
of the route would not register it". As far as PW36 is concerned, he
identified the signatures of the General Manager of his Company who signed
Ext.P36 series. He testified to the fact that the call details of the
particular telephone numbers were contained in the relevant exhibits produced
by him. It is significant to note that no suggestion was put to these two
witnesses touching the authenticity of the call records or the possible
tampering with the entries, although the arguments have proceeded on the lines
that there could have been fabrication. In support of such argument, the
duplication of entries in Exts.36/2 and 36/3 and that there was some
discrepancy relating to the Cell I.D. and IMEI number of the handset at certain
places was pointed out. The factum of presence of duplicate entries was
elicited by the counsel appearing for Afsan Guru from PW36 when PW36 was in the
witness box. The evidence of DW107a technical expert, was only to the effect
that it was possible to clone a SIM by means of a SIM Programmer which to his
knowledge, was not available in Delhi or elsewhere. His evidence was only of a
general nature envisaging a theoretical possibility and not with reference to
specific instances. According to Section 63, secondary evidence means and
includes, among other things, "copies made from the original by mechanical
processes which in themselves ensure the accuracy of the copy, and copies
compared with such copies". Section 65 enables secondary evidence of the
contents of a document to be adduced if the original is of such a nature as not
to be easily movable. It is not in dispute that the information contained in
the call records is stored in huge servers which cannot be easily moved and
produced in the Court. That is what the High Court has also observed at para
276. Hence, printouts taken from the computers/servers by mechanical process
and certified by a responsible official of the service providing Company can be
led into evidence through a witness who can identify the signatures of the
certifying officer or otherwise speak to the facts based on his personal
knowledge. Irrespective of the compliance of the requirements of Section 65B
which is a provision dealing with admissibility of electronic records, there is
no bar to adducing secondary evidence under the other provisions of the
Evidence Act, namely Sections 63 & 65. It may be that the certificate
containing the details in sub-Section (4) of Section 65B is not filed in the
instant case, but that does not mean that secondary evidence cannot be given
even if the law permits such evidence to be given in the circumstances
mentioned in the relevant provisions, namely Sections 63 & 65.
The learned senior counsel Mr. Shanti Bhushan then contended that the
witnesses examined were not technical persons acquainted with the functioning
of the computers, nor they do have personal knowledge of the details stored in
the servers of the computers. We do not find substance in this argument. Both
the witnesses were responsible officials of the concerned Companies who deposed
to the fact that they were the printouts obtained from the computer records. In
fact the evidence of PW35 shows that he is fairly familiar with the computer system
and its output. If there was some questioning vis-'-vis specific details or
specific suggestion of fabrication of printouts, it would have been obligatory
on the part of the prosecution to call a technical expert directly in the know
of things. The following observations of House of Lords in the case of R Vs.
Shepard [1993 AC 380] are quite apposite:
"####BODY####5The nature of the evidence to discharge the burden of
showing that there has been no improper use of the computer and that it was
operating properly will inevitably vary from case to case. The evidence must be
tailored to suit the needs of the case. I suspect that it will very rarely be
necessary to call an expert and that in the vast majority of cases it will be
possible to discharge the burden by calling a witness who is familiar with the
operation of the computer in the sense of knowing what the computer is required
to do and who can say that it is doing it properly."
Such a view was expressed even in the face of a more stringent provision
in Section 69 of the Police and Criminal Act, 1984 in U.K. casting a positive
obligation on the part of the prosecution to lead evidence in respect of proof
of the computer record. We agree with the submission of Mr. Gopal Subramanium
that the burden of prosecution under the Indian Law cannot be said to be higher
than what was laid down in R Vs. Shepard (supra).
Although necessary suggestions were not put forward to the witnesses so
as to discredit the correctness/genuineness of the call records produced, we
would prefer to examine the points made out by the learned counsel for the
accused independently. As already noted, one such contention was about the
presence of duplicate entries in Ext.36/2 and 36/3. We feel that an innocuous
error in the computer recording is being magnified to discredit the entire
document containing the details without any warrant. As explained by the
learned counsel for the State, the computer, at the first instance, instead of
recording the IMEI number of the mobile instrument, had recorded the IMEI and
cell ID (location) of the person calling/called by the subscriber. The computer
rectified this obvious error immediately and modified the record to show the
correct details viz., the IMEI and the cell I.D. of the subscriber only. The
document is self-explanatory of the error. A perusal of both the call records
with reference to the call at 11:19:14 hours exchanged between 9811489429
(Shaukat's) and 9811573506 (Afzal's) shows that the said call was recorded
twice in the call records. The fact that the same call has been recorded twice
in the call records of the calling and called party simultaneously demonstrates
beyond doubt that the correctness or genuineness of the call is beyond doubt.
Further, on a comparative perusal of the two call records, the details of Cell
I.D. and IMEI of the two numbers are also recorded. Thus, as rightly pointed
out by the counsel for the State Mr. Gopal Subramanium, the same call has been
recorded two times, first with the cell ID and IMEI number of the calling
number (9811489429). The same explanation holds good for the call at 11:32:40
hours. Far from supporting the contention of the defence, the above facts,
evident from the perusal of the call records, would clearly show that the
system was working satisfactorily and it promptly checked and rectified the
mistake that occurred. As already noticed, it was not suggested nor could it be
suggested that there was any manipulation or material deficiency in the
computer on account of these two errors. Above all, the printouts pertaining to
the call details exhibited by the prosecution are of such regularity and
continuity that it would be legitimate to draw a presumption that the system
was functional and the output was produced by the computer in regular use, whether
this fact was specifically deposed to by the witness or not. We are therefore
of the view that the call records are admissible and reliable and rightly made
use of by the prosecution.
16. Interception of Phone Calls The legality and admissibility of intercepted
telephone calls arises in the context of telephone conversation between Shaukat
and his wife Afsan Guru on 14th December at 20:09 hrs and the conversation
between Gilani and his brother Shah Faizal on the same day at 12:22 hrs.
Interception of communication is provided for by the provisions contained in
Chapter V of the POTO/POTA which contains Sections 36 to 48. The proviso to
Section 45 lays down the pre-requisite conditions for admitting the evidence
collected against the accused through the interception of wire, electronic or
oral communication. Chapter V governing the procedure for interception and
admission of the intercepted communications pre-supposes that there is an
investigation of a terrorists act under the POTA has been set in motion. It is
not in dispute that the procedural requirements of Chapter V have not been
complied with when such interceptions took place on 14th December, 2001. But,
as already noticed, on the crucial date on which interception took place (i.e.
14th December), no offence under POTA was included 6 whether in the FIR or in
any other contemporaneous documents. We have already held that the non-
inclusion of POTO offences even at the threshold of investigation cannot be
legally faulted and that such non-inclusion was not deliberate. The
admissibility or the evidentiary status of the two intercepted conversations
should, therefore, be judged de hors the provisions of POTO/POTA. On the
relevant day, the interception of messages was governed by Section 5(2) of the
Indian Telegraph Act read with Rule 419-A of the Indian Telegraph Rules.
The substantive power of interception by the Government or the
authorized officer is conferred by Section 5. The modalities and procedure for
interception is governed by the said Rules. It is contended by the learned
senior counsel appearing for the two accused 6 Shaukat and Gilani, that even
the Rule 6 419A, has not been complied with in the instant case, and,
therefore, the tape- recorded conversation obtained by such interception cannot
be utilized by the prosecution to incriminate the said accused. It is the
contention of learned counsel for the State, Mr. Gopal Subramanium, that there
was substantial compliance with Rule 419A and, in any case, even if the
interception did not take place in strict conformity with the Rule, that does
not affect the admissibility of the communications so recorded. In other words,
his submission is that the illegality or irregularity in interception does not
affect its admissibility in evidence there being no specific embargo against
the admissibility in the Telegraph Act or in the Rules. Irrespective of the
merit in the first contention of Mr. Gopal Subramanium, we find force in the
alternative contention advanced by him.
In regard to the first aspect, two infirmities are pointed out in the
relevant orders authorizing and confirming the interception of specified
telephone numbers. It is not shown by the prosecution that the Joint Director,
Intelligence Bureau who authorized the interception, holds the rank of Joint
Secretary to the Government of India. Secondly, the confirmation orders passed
by the Home Secretary (contained in volume 7 of lower Court record, Page 447
etc.,) would indicate that the confirmation was prospective. We are distressed
to note that the confirmation orders should be passed by a senior officer of
the Government of India in such a careless manner, that too, in an important
case of this nature. However, these deficiencies or inadequacies do not, in our
view, preclude the admission of intercepted telephonic communication in
evidence. It is to be noted that unlike the proviso to Section 45 of POTA,
Section 5(2) of the Telegraph Act or Rule 419A does not deal with any rule of
evidence. The non-compliance or inadequate compliance with the provisions of
the Telegraph Act does not per se affect the admissibility. The legal position
regarding the question of admissibility of the tape recorded conversation
illegally collected or obtained is no longer res integra in view of the
decision of this Court in R.M. Malkani Vs. State of Maharashtra [(1973) 1 SCC
471]. In that case, the Court clarified that a contemporaneous tape record of a
relevant conversation is a relevant fact and is admissible as res gestae under
Section 7 of the Evidence Act. Adverting to the argument that Section 25 of the
Indian Telegraph Act was contravened the learned Judges held that there was no
violation. At the same time, the question of admissibility of evidence
illegally obtained was discussed. The law was laid down as follows:
"####BODY####5There is warrant for the proposition that even if
evidence is illegally obtained it is admissible. Over a century ago it was said
in an English case where a constable searched the appellant illegally and found
a quantity of offending article in his pocket that it would be a dangerous
obstacle to the administration of justice if it were held, because evidence was
obtained by illegal means, it could not be used against a party charged with an
offence. See Jones V. Owen (1870) 34 JP 759. The Judicial Committee in Kumar,
Son of Kanju V. R [1955 1 All E.R. 236] dealt with the conviction of an accused
of being in unlawful possession of ammunition which had been discovered in
consequence of a search of his person by a police officer below the rank of
those who were permitted to make such searches. The Judicial Committee held
that the evidence was rightly admitted. The reason given was that if evidence
was admissible it matters not how it was obtained. There is of course always a
word of caution. It is that the Judge has a discretion to disallow evidence in
a criminal case if the strict rules of admissibility would operate unfairly
against the accused. That caution is the golden rule in criminal
jurisprudence."
We may also refer to the decision of a Constitution Bench of this Court
in Pooranmal Vs. Director of Inspection [1974 2 SCR 704] in which the principle
stated by the Privy Council in Kurma's case was approvingly referred to while
testing the evidentiary status of illegally obtained evidence. Another
decision in which the same approach was adopted is a recent judgment in
State Vs. NMT Joy Immaculate [(2004) 5 SCC 729]. It may be mentioned that
Pooranmal's case was distinguished by this Court in Ali Musfata vs. State of
Kerala [(1994) 6 SCC 569] which is a case arising under NDPS Act on the ground
that contraband material seized as a result of illegal search and seizure could
by itself be treated as evidence of possession of the contraband which is the
gist of the offence under the said Act. In the instant case, the tape recorded
conversation which has been duly proved and conforms to the requirements laid
down by this Court in Ramsingh Vs. Ramsingh [(1985) Suppl. SCC 611] can be
pressed into service against the concerned accused in the joint trial for the
offences under the Indian Penal Code as well as POTA. Such evidence cannot be
shut out by applying the embargo contained in Section 45 when on the date of
interception, the procedure under Chapter V of POTA was not required to be
complied with. On the relevant date POTA was not in the picture and the
investigation did not specifically relate to the offences under POTA. The
question of applying the proviso to Section 45 of POTA does not, therefore,
arise as the proviso applies only in the event of the communications being
legally required to be intercepted under the provisions of POTA. The proviso to
Section 45 cannot be so read as to exclude such material in relation to POTA
offences if it is otherwise admissible under the general law of evidence.
17. Procedural safeguards in POTA and their impact on confessions
As already noticed, POTA has absorbed into it the guidelines spelt out
in Kartar Singh's case and D.K.Basus's case in order to impart an element of
fairness and reasonableness into the stringent provisions of POTA in tune with
the philosophy of Article 21 and allied constitutional provisions. These
salutary safeguards are contained in Section 32 and Section 52 of POTA. The
peremptory prescriptions embodied in Section 32 of POTA are:6 (a) The police
officer shall warn the accused that he is not bound to make the confession and
if he does so, it may be used against him (vide sub-section (2). (b) The
confession shall be recorded in an atmosphere free from threat or inducement
and shall be in the same language in which the person makes it (vide
sub-section (3). (c) The person from whom a confession has been recorded under
sub-section (1) shall be produced before the Chief Metropolitan Magistrate or
Chief Judicial Magistrate along with the original statement of confession,
within forty-eight hours (vide sub-section (4). (d) The CMM/CJM shall record
the statement, if any, made by the person so produced and get his signature and
if there is any complaint of torture, such person shall be directed to be produced
for medical examination. After recording the statement and after medical
examination, if necessary, he shall be sent to judicial custody (vide
sub-section (5).
The mandate of sub-sections 2 & 3 is not something new. Almost
similar prescriptions were there under TADA also. In fact, the fulfillment of
such mandate is inherent in the process of recording a confession by a
statutory authority. What is necessarily implicit is, perhaps, made explicit.
But the notable safeguards which were lacking in TADA are to be found in
sub-sections 4 & 5.
The lofty purpose behind the mandate that the maker of confession shall
be sent to judicial custody by the CJM before whom he is produced is to provide
an atmosphere in which he would feel free to make a complaint against the
police, if he so wishes. The feeling that he will be free from the shackles of
police custody after production in the Court will minimize, if not remove, the
fear psychosis by which he may be gripped. The various safeguards enshrined in
Section 32 are meant to be strictly observed as they relate to personal liberty
of an individual. However, we add a caveat here. The strict enforcement of the
provision as to judicial remand and the invalidation of confession merely on
the ground of its non-compliance may present some practical difficulties at
times. Situations may arise that even after the confession is made by a person
in custody, police custody may still be required for the purpose of further
investigation. Sending a person to judicial custody at that stage may retard
the investigation. Sometimes, the further steps to be taken by the investigator
with the help of the accused may brook no delay. An attempt shall
however be made to harmonize this provision in Section 32(5) with the powers of
investigation available to the police. At the same time, it needs to be
emphasized that the obligation to send the confession maker to judicial custody
cannot be lightly disregarded. The police custody cannot be given on mere
asking by the police. It shall be remembered that sending a person who has made
the confession to judicial custody after he is produced before the CJM is the
normal rule and this procedural safeguard should be given its due primacy. The
CJM should be satisfied that it is absolutely necessary that the confession
maker shall be restored to police custody for any special reason. Such a course
of sending him back to police custody could only be done in exceptional cases
after due application of mind. Most often, sending such person to judicial
custody in compliance with Section 32(5) soon after the proceedings are
recorded by the CJM subject to the consideration of the application by the
police after a few days may not make material difference for further
investigation. The CJM has a duty to consider whether the application is only a
ruse to get back the person concerned to police custody in case he disputes the
confession or it is an application made bona fide in view of the need and
urgency involved. We are therefore of the view that the non- compliance with
the judicial custody requirement does not per se vitiate the confession, though
its non-compliance should be one of the important factors that must be borne in
mind in testing the confession.
These provisions of Section 32, which are conceived in the interest of
the accused, will go a long way to screen and exclude confessions, which appear
to be involuntary. The requirements and safeguards laid down in sub-sections 2
to 5 are an integral part of the scheme providing for admissibility of
confession made to the police officer. The breach of any one of these
requirements would have a vital bearing on the admissibility and evidentiary
value of the confession recorded under Section 32(1) and may even inflict a
fatal blow on such confession. We have another set of procedural safeguards
laid down in Section 52 of POTA which are modelled on the guidelines envisaged
by D.K. Basu (supra). Section 52 runs as under:
"52 (1) Where a police officer arrests a person, he shall prepare a
custody memo of the person arrested. (2) The person arrested shall be informed
of his right to consult a legal practitioner as soon as he is brought to the
police station.
(3) Whenever any person is arrested, information of his arrest shall be
immediately communicated by the police officer to a family member or in his
absence to a relative of such person by telegram, telephone or by any other
means and this fact shall be recorded by the police officer under the signature
of the person arrested.
(4) The person arrested shall be permitted to meet the legal
practitioner representing him during the course of interrogation of the accused
person:
Provided that nothing in this sub-section, shall, entitle the legal
practitioner to remain present throughout the period of interrogation."
Sub-sections 2 & 4 as well as sub-Section (3) stem from the
guarantees enshrined in Articles 21 and 22(1) of the Constitution. Article
22(1) enjoins that no person who is arrested shall be detained in custody
without being informed, as soon as may be, of the grounds for such arrest nor
shall he be denied the right to consult, and to be defended by, a legal
practitioner of his choice. They are also meant to effectuate the commandment
of Article 20(3) that no person accused of any offence shall be compelled to be
a witness against himself.
The breadth and depth of the principle against self-incrimination
imbedded in Article 20(3) was unravelled by a three Judge Bench speaking
through Krishna Iyer, J. in Nandini Satpathy Vs. P.L. Dani [(1978) 2 SCC 424].
It was pointed out by the learned Judge that the area covered by Article
20(3) and Section 161(2) of Cr.P.C. is substantially the same.
"Section 161(2) of the Cr.P.C. is a parliamentary gloss on the
constitutional clause"7it was observed. This Court rejected the contention
advanced on behalf of the State that the two provisions, namely, Article 20(3)
and Section 161, did not operate at the anterior stages before the case came to
Court and the incriminating utterance of the accused, previously recorded, was
attempted to be introduced. Noting that the landmark decision in Miranda Vs.
Arizona [1966, 384 US 436] did extend the embargo to police investigation also,
the Court observed that there was no warrant to truncate the constitutional
protection underlying Article 20(3). It was held that even the investigation at
the police level is embraced by Article 20(3) and this is what precisely
Section 161(2) means. The interpretation so placed on Article 20(3) and Section
161, in the words of the learned Judge, "brings us nearer to the Miranda
mantle of exclusion which extends the right against self-incrimination, to
police examination and custodial interrogation and takes in suspects as much as
regular accused persons". The observations in M.P. Sharma Vs. Satish Chandra
[AIR 1954 SC 300] to the effect that "the protection afforded to an
accused insofar as it is related to the phrase 'to be a witness' is not merely
in respect of testimonial compulsion in the Court room but may well extend to
compelled testimony previously obtained from him" were cited with
approval.
In the same Judgment, we find lucid exposition of the width and content
of Article 22(1). Krishna Iyer, J. observed7
"####BODY####5The spirit and sense of Article 22(1) is that it is
fundamental to the rule of law that the services of a lawyer shall be available
for consultation to any accused person under circumstances of near- custodial
interrogation. Moreover, the observance of the right against self-incrimination
is best promoted by conceding to the accused the right to consult a legal
practitioner of his choice."
Article 22(1) was viewed to be complementary to Article 20(3). It was
observed7"we think that Article 20(3) and Article 22(1) may, in a way, be
telescoped by making it prudent for the police to permit the advocate of the
accused, if there be one to be present at the time he is examined". It was
pointed out that lawyer's presence, in the context of Article 20(3), "is
an assurance of awareness and observance of the right to silence". It was
then clarified7"we do not lay down that the police must secure the
services of a lawyer####BODY####5####BODY####5but all that we mean is that if
an accused person expresses the wish to have his lawyer by his side when his
examination goes on, this facility shall not be denied", without being
exposed to the charge of securing involuntary self-incrimination. It was also
clarified that the police need not wait more than for a reasonable while for an
advocate's arrival. But they must invariably warn7and record that fact about
the right to silence. It was aptly and graphically said7"Article 20(3) is
not a paper tiger but a provision to police the police and to silence coerced
crimination". Based on the observations in Nadini Satpathy's case, it is
possible to agree that the constitutional guarantee under Article 22(1) only
implies that the suspect in the police custody shall not be denied the right to
meet and consult his lawyer even at the stage of interrogation. In other words,
if he wishes to have the presence of the lawyer, he shall not be denied that
opportunity. Perhaps, Nandini Satpathy does not go so far as Miranda in
establishing access to lawyer at interrogation stage. But, Section 52(2) of
POTA makes up this deficiency. It goes a step further and casts an imperative on
the police officer to inform the person arrested of his right to consult a
legal practitioner, soon after he is brought to the police station. Thus, the
police officer is bound to apprise the arrested person of his right to consult
the lawyer. To that extent, Section 52(2) affords an additional safeguard to
the person in custody. Section 52(2) is founded on the MIRANDA rule.
A discussion on the raison d'etre and the desirability of the provision
enacted in Section 52(1) read with Section 52(4) can best be understood by
referring to the seminal case of Miranda Vs. Arizona which is an oft-quoted
decision. The privilege against the self-incrimination was expressly protected
by the V amendment of the U.S. Constitution. It provides, as Article 20(3) of
Indian Constitution provides, that no person####BODY####5."shall be
compelled in any criminal case to be a witness against himself". Such
privilege lies at the heart
of the concept of a fair procedure and such norm is now recognized to be
an international standard. The V amendment also guarantees a right akin to
Article 21 of our Constitution by enjoining that no person shall be deprived of
life, liberty or property without due process of law. Another notable safeguard
to the accused is to be found in the VI amendment which inter alia provides
that in a criminal prosecution, the accused shall have the assistance of
counsel for his defence. The safeguard is substantially similar to Article
22(1) of the Indian Constitution. It is in the context of exposition of these constitutional
provisions that the U.S. Supreme Court handed down the significant ruling in
Miranda. The core principles underscored in Miranda have withstood the judicial
scrutiny in the subsequent rulings, though the straight jacketed warning
procedures and the effect of technical non-compliance of Miranda procedures
evoked critical comments and set a process of debate. Miranda is often referred
to as "the marriage of the V&VI amendments" and it is seen as the
natural outgrowth of V Amendment guarantees, spread over a century or more.
Prior to Miranda ruling, confessions were only required to meet the
'voluntariness' test. In the post Miranda era, police have to prove that they
read specific Miranda warnings and obtained an 'intelligent waiver'. The purpose
of Miranda it is said, is to neutralize the distinct psychological disadvantage
that suspects are under when dealing with police. The proposition laid down in
the majority opinion in Miranda case was that "the prosecution may not use
statements, whether exculpatory or inculpatory, stemming from custodial
interrogation of the defendant unless it demonstrates the use of procedural
safeguards effective to secure the privilege against self- incrimination".
To ensure tht the exercise of the right will be scrupulously honoured, the
Court laid down the following measures:
"He must be warned prior to any questioning that he has the right
to remain silent, that anything he says can be used against him in a Court of
law, that he has the right to the presence of an attorney, and that if he
cannot afford an attorney one will be appointed for him prior to any
questioning if he so desires. Opportunity to exercise these rights must be
afforded to him throughout the interrogation. After such warnings have been
given, and such opportunity afforded him, the individual may knowingly and
intelligently waive these rights and agree to answer questions or make a
statement. But unless and until such warnings and waiver are demonstrated by
the prosecution at trial, no evidence obtained as a result of interrogation can
be used against him".
On the content of the right to consult a counsel not merely at the stage
of trial, but also at the interrogation stage, Chief Justice Warren observed
thus:
"In order fully to apprise a person interrogated of the extent of
his rights under this system then, it is necessary to warn him not only that he
has the right to consult with an attorney, but also that if he is indigent a
lawyer will be appointed to represent him. Without this additional warning, the
admonition of the right to consult with counsel would often be understood as
meaning only that he can consult with a lawyer if he has one or has the funds
to obtain one. The warning of a right to counsel would be hollow if not couched
in terms that would convey to the indigent7the person most often subjected to
interrogation7the knowledge that he too has a right to have counsel
present."
At the same time it was clarified7
"This does not mean, as some have suggested, that each police
station must have a "station house lawyer" present at all times to
advise prisoners. It does mean, however, that if police propose to interrogate
a person, they must make known to him that he is entitled to a lawyer and that
if he cannot afford one, a lawyer will be provided for him prior to any
interrogation."
It was aptly pointed out that "the modern practice of 'in custody
interrogation' is psychologically rather than physically oriented".
Now the question remains as to what is the effect of non-compliance of
the obligations cast on the police officer by sub-Sections (2) to (4) of
Section 52. This question becomes relevant as we find the non observance of the
requirements of sub-Section (2) read with sub-Section (4) as well as sub-
Section (3) or one of them in the instant cases. Does it have a bearing on the
voluntariness and admissibility of the confession recorded under Section 32(1)?
Should these safeguards envisaged in Section 52(1) be telescoped into Section
32? These are the questions which arise.
In our considered view, the violation of procedural safeguards under
Section 52 does not stand on the same footing as the violation of the
requirements of sub-Sections (2) to (5) of Section 32. As already observed,
sub-Sections (2) to (5) of Section 32 have an integral and inseparable
connection with the confession recorded under Section 32(1). They are designed
to be checks against involuntary confessions and to provide an immediate remedy
to the person making the confession to air his grievance before a judicial
authority. These safeguards are, so to say, woven into the fabric of Section 32
itself and their observance is so vital that the breach thereof will normally
result in eschewing the confession from consideration, subject to what we have
said about the judicial custody. The prescriptions under Section 52, especially
those affording an opportunity to have the presence of the legal practitioner,
are no doubt supplemental safeguards as they will promote the guarantee against
self-incrimination even at the stage of interrogation; but these requirements
laid down in Section 52 cannot be projected into Section 32 so as to read all
of them as constituting a code of safeguards of the same magnitude. To hold
that the violation of each one of the safeguards envisaged by Section 52 would
lead to automatic invalidation of confession would not be in consonance with
the inherent nature and scheme of the respective provisions. However, we would
like to make it clear that the denial of the safeguards under sub-Sections (2)
to (4) of Section 52 will be one of the relevant factors that would weigh with
the Court to act upon or discard the confession. To this extent they play a
role vis-'-vis the confessions recorded under Section 32, but they are not as
clinching as the provisions contained in sub-Sections (2) to (5) of Section 32.
18. CASE OF MOHD. AFZAL (A1)
(i) Legal Assistance :
The first point raised by Mr. Sushil Kumar, appearing for the accused
Afzal, was that he was denied proper legal aid, thereby depriving him of
effective defence in the course of trial. In sum and substance, the contention
is that the counsel appointed by the Court as 'amicus curiae' to take care of
his defence was thrust on him against his will and the first amicus appointed
made concessions with regard to the admission of certain documents and framing
of charges without his knowledge. It is further submitted that the counsel who
conducted the trial did not diligently cross-examine the witnesses. It is,
therefore, contended that his valuable right of legal aid flowing from Articles
21
and 22 is violated. We find no substance in this contention. The learned
trial Judge did his best to afford effective legal aid to the accused Afzal
when he declined to engage a counsel on his own. We are unable to hold that the
learned counsel who defended the accused at the trial was either inexperienced
or ineffective or otherwise handled the case in a casual manner. The criticism
against the counsel seems to be an after thought raised at the appellate stage.
It was rightly negatived by the High Court.
Coming to the specific details, in the first instance, when Afzal along
with other accused was produced before the special Judge, he was offered the
assistance of a counsel. One Mr. Attar Alam was appointed. However, the said
advocate was not willing to act as amicus. On 14.5.2002, the charge sheet was
filed in the Court. On 17.5.2002, the trial Judge appointed Ms. Seema Gulati
who agreed to defend Afzal. She filed Vakalatnama along with her junior Mr.
Neeraj Bansal on the same day on behalf of the accused Afzal. On 3.6.2002, the
arguments on charges were heard. Afzal was represented by Ms. Seema Gulati. The
counsel conceded that there was prima facie material to frame charges. The
Court framed charges against all the accused on 4.6.2002 and the accused
pleaded not guilty. True, the appellant was without counsel till
17.5.2002 but the fact remains that till then, no proceedings except
extending the remand and furnishing of documents took place in the Court. The
next date which deserves mention is 5.6.2002. On that date, all the counsel
appearing for the accused agreed that postmortem reports, MLCs, documents
related to recovery of guns and explosive substances at the spot should be
considered as undisputed evidence without formal proof which resulted in
dropping of considerable number of witnesses for the prosecution. The learned
senior counsel for the appellant by referring to the application filed by Ms.
Seema Gulati on 1.7.2002 seeking her discharge from the case, highlights the
fact that she took no instructions from Afzal or discussed the case with him
and therefore no concession should have been made by her. The contention has no
force. Assuming that the counsel's statement that she took no instructions from
the accused is correct, even then there is nothing wrong in the conduct of the
advocate in agreeing for admission of formal documents without formal proof or
in agreeing for the framing of charges. The counsel had exercised her
discretion reasonably. The appellant accused did not object to this course
adopted by the amicus throughout the trial. No doubt, some of the documents
admitted contained particulars of identification of the deceased terrorists by
the appellant Afzal, but, the factum of identification was independently proved
by the prosecution witnesses and opportunity of cross- examination was
available to the accused. In the circumstances, we cannot say that there was a
reasonable possibility of prejudice on account of admission of the said
documents without formal proof.
Coming to the next phase of development, on 1.7.2002, Ms. Seema Gulati
filed an application praying for her discharge from the case citing a curious
reason that she had been engaged by another accused Gilani to appear on his
behalf. An order was passed on 2.7.2002 releasing her from the case. Mr. Neeraj
Bansal who filed Vakalat along with Ms. Seema Gulati was then nominated as
amicus to defend Afzal and the brief was handed over to him. NO objection was
raised by Afzal on that occasion. Inspection of record by the counsel was
allowed on 3.7.2002 and on subsequent occasions. On 8.7.2002, the accused Afzal
filed a petition stating therein that he was not satisfied with the counsel
appointed by the Court and that he needed the services of a senior advocate. He
named four advocates in the petition and requested the Court to appoint one of
them. On 12th July, the trial Judge recorded that the counsel named by the
accused were not willing to take up the case. Mr. Neeraj Bansal was therefore
continued especially in view of the fact that he had experience of dealing with
TADA cases. Afzal was also given the opportunity to cross- examine the
prosecution witnesses in addition to the amicus. In fact, he did avail of that
opportunity now and then. On several occasions, there was common
cross-examination on behalf of all the accused. No indicia of apparent
prejudice, is discernible from the manner in which the case was defended.
Though the objection that he was not satisfied with his counsel was reiterated
on 12.7.02 after PW15 was cross examined, we do not think that the Court should
dislodge the counsel and go on searching for some other counsel to the liking
of the accused. The right to legal aid cannot be taken thus far. It is not
demonstrated before us as to how the case was mishandled by the advocate
appointed as amicus except pointing out stray instances pertaining to cross-
examination of one or two witnesses. The very decision relied upon by the
learned counsel for the appellant, namely, Strickland Vs. Washington [466 US
668] makes it clear that judicial scrutiny of a counsel's performance must be
careful, deferential and circumspect as the ground of ineffective assistance
could be easily raised after an adverse verdict at the trial. It was observed
therein:
"Judicial scrutiny of counsel's performance must be highly
deferential. It is all too tempting for a defendant to second-guess counsel's
assistance after conviction or adverse sentence, and it is all too easy for a
court, examining counsel's defence after it has proved unsuccessful, to
conclude that a particular act of omission of counsel was unreasonable. Cf.
Engle Vs. Isaac [456 US 107, 133-134] (1982). A fair assessment of attorney
performance requires that every effort be made to eliminate the distorting
effects of hindsight, to reconstruct the circumstances of counsel's challenged
conduct, and to evaluate the conduct from counsel's perspective at the time.
Because of the difficulties inherent in
making the evaluation, a court must indulge in a strong presumption that
counsel's conduct falls within the wide range of reasonable professional
assistance; ####BODY####5"
The learned senior counsel for the State Mr. Gopal Subramnium has
furnished a table indicating the cross examination of material prosecution
witnesses by the counsel Mr. Neeraj Bansal as Annexure 16 to the written
submissions. Taking an overall view of the assistance given by the Court and
the performance of the counsel, it cannot be said that the accused was denied
the facility of effective defence.
(iii) Evidence against Mohd. Afzal
Now let us analyze the evidence against Afzal that is sought to be
relied upon by the prosecution. It consists of confessional statement recorded
by the DCP, Special Cell7PW60 and the circumstantial evidence.
(iii) Confession
First, we shall advert to the confession. It is in the evidence of PW807
Rajbir Singh (ACP), Special Cell that he took over investigation on 19.12.2001
on which date the offences under POTA were added. Then, he further interrogated
the accused Afzal on 20.12.2001 and recorded his supplementary disclosure
statement7Ext. PW64/3. According to him, the three accused7 Afzal, Shaukat and
Gilani, expressed their desire to make confessional statements before the
Deputy Commissioner of Police. Accordingly, he apprised the DCP, Special Cell
(PW60) of this fact. PW60 directed him to produce the accused persons at
Gazetted Officers' Mess, Alipur Road, Delhi on the next day. First, PW80
produced Gilani before PW60 at 11.30 a.m. but he declined to give the
confessional statement. Then he produced Mohd. Afzal before the DCP, Special
Cell in the evening. The recording of the confession by PW607 DCP started at
7.10 pm on 21.12.2001 and ended at 10.45 pm. It is recorded in the preamble of
the confession that he had asked ACP Rajbir Singh to leave the room and after
that he warned and explained to the accused that he was not bound to make the
confessional statement and that if he did so, it can be used against him as
evidence. Thereupon, it was recorded that Afzal was not under any duress and he
was ready to give the confessional statement. The signature of Afzal is found
beneath that endorsement. There is a recital to the effect that PW60 was
satisfied that the accused was not under duress or pressure. PW60 also deposed
that the accused were 'comfortable' in English language and he kept on writing
as they narrated their versions. He (PW60) denied the suggestion that Afzal was
not produced before him and he did not express his willingness to make
confession. The DCP(PW60) handed over a sealed envelope containing the
confessional statements to PW807the I.O. who produced the accused Afzal and two
others before the Addl. Chief Metropolitan Magistrate (ACMM), Delhi on
22.12.2001 together with an application7Ext. PW63/1. The ACMM was examined as
PW63. The ACMM stated that he opened the sealed envelope containing Exts.PW60/9
& PW60/6 which are the confessional statements of Afzal and Shaukat, and
Ext.PW60/3 which is the statement of Gilani and perused them. The ACMM then
recorded the statements of the accused persons. The two accused Afzal and
Shaukat confirmed having made the confessional statement without any threat or
pressure. The proceedings drawn by him is Ext.PW63/2. The accused signed the
statements confirming the confession made to the DCP. The statement of Mohd.
Afzal and his signature are marked as Exts.PW63/5 & 63/6. PW63 stated that
he made enquiries from the accused persons and none of them made any complaint
of use of force or threat at the time of recording confession. He also deposed
that he gave a warning that they were not bound to make the statement before
him. A suggestion that Mohd. Afzal did not appear before him nor did he make
the statement, was denied. The ACMM, after drawing up the proceedings, sent the
accused Afzal to police custody for a week at the instance of I.O.7PW80 for the
reason that he was required to be taken to certain places in Kashmir for
further investigation.
We shall now give the gist of the confessional statement of Mohd. Afzal
which is Ext.PW60/9 read with Ext.PW60/7. First, he mentions about joining
JKLF, a militant outfit during the year 1989-90, receiving training in Pak
Occupied Kashmir in insurgent activities and coming back to India with arms,
his arrival in Delhi with his cousin Shaukat for studies, coming into contact
with SAR Gilani7A3 while studying in Delhi University, surrendering before BSF
in
1993 on the advice of his family members, returning back to his native
place Sopore and doing commission agency business, coming into contact with one
Tariq of Anantanag at that time, who motivated him to join 'Jihad' for
liberation of Kashmir and assured him of financial assistance, Tariq
introducing him to one Ghazibaba (proclaimed offender) in Kashmir who further
exhorted him to join the movement and apprised him of the mission to carry out
attacks on important institutions in India like Parliament and Embassies and
asked him to find a safe hideout for the 'Fidayeens' in Delhi.
During that meeting, he was introduced to Mohammed and Haider, Pak nationals
and militants. In the month of October, 2001, he rang up to Shaukat and asked
him to rent out accommodation for himself and Mohammed. In the first week of
November, he and Mohammed came to Delhi. Mohammed brought with him a laptop and
Rs.50,000. Shaukat took them to the pre- arranged accommodation in Christian
Colony Boys' Hostel. He revealed to Shaukat that Mohammed was a Pak militant of
Jaish-E-Mohammed and came to Delhi to carry out a Fidayen attack. After a week,
he arranged another safe hideout at A-97, Gandhi Vihar. Mohammed collected
money through 'hawala' and gave Rs.5 lakhs to be handed over to Tariq in
Srinagar. Accordingly, he went to Srinagar and gave the money to Tariq. At the
instance of Tariq, he brought two other militants Raja and Hyder to Delhi and
both were accommodated at the hideout in Gandhi Vihar. In order to complete the
task assigned by Ghazibaba, he along with Mohammed went to the shops in old
Delhi area and purchased 60 KGs of Ammonium Nitrate, 10 KGs of Aluminum powder,
5 KGs of Sulpher and other items in order to facilitate preparation of
explosives by Mohammed. After a week or so, Mohammed gave another 5 lakhs of
rupees to be handed over to Tariq. Tariq asked him to take along with him two
other militants, Rana and Hamza. They were carrying two holdalls which
contained rifles with loaded magazines, grenade launcher, pistols, hand
grenades and shells, electric detonators and other explosives. They also stayed
in Gandhi Nagar hideout initially. After reaching Delhi, he arranged for
another accommodation at 281, Indira Vihar. Mohammed purchased mobile phones
and SIM cards from the markets and received directions from Ghazibaba from a
satellite phone. He used to meet Shaukat and Gilani and motivate them for
Jihad. Shaukat provided his motorcycle for conducting 'recce'. Meetings were
also arranged in the house of Shaukat for deciding future course of action. In
those meetings, Gilani and Shaukat's wife Afsan also used to be present. At the
meetings, various targets such as Delhi Assembly, Parliament, UK & US
Embassy and Airport were discussed. Then, after conducting survey of all the
targets, Mohammed informed Ghazibaba that they should strike at the Indian
Parliament. A final meeting was held in the house of Shaukat in which all were
present and plans for attack on Parliament House were finalized. As per the
plan, he along with Mohammed went to Karolbagh and bought a second hand
Ambassador car on 11th December. They also purchased a magnetic VIP red light.
Mohammed got prepared a sticker of MHA and identity cards through his laptop.
Mohammed and other militants prepared IEDs with the use of chemicals. This IED
was fitted in the car for causing explosion.
On the night of 12.12.2001, he along with Shaukat and Gilani went to the
hideout in Gandhi Vihar, where all the five Pak militants were present.
Mohammed gave him the laptop and Rs.10 lakhs. He asked him to reach the laptop
to Ghazibaba and also told him that Rs.10 lakhs was meant for him and his
friends Shaukat and Gilani. Mohammed told him that they were going to conduct a
Fidayeen attack on Parliament House on 13.12.2001. They were in touch with each
other on mobile phones. On 13.12.2001, he received a call on his mobile No.
98114-89429 from Mohammed's phone No. 98106-93456. He was asked to watch the TV
and inform him about the presence of various VVIPs in Parliament House. As
there was no electricity, he could not watch TV and therefore he contacted
Shaukat and asked him to watch TV and convey the information. Then Mohammed
called him (Afzal) and told him that he was going ahead with the attack on the
Parliament. He then called Shaukat and told him that the mission had started.
Shaukat then came and met him at Azadpur mandi and both went to Gilani's house
and gave him Rs.2 lakhs. Gilani in turn asked him to give the money at his
house in Kashmir. Then he and Shaukat left for Srinagar in Shaukat's truck.
They were apprehended by the Srinagar police on 15th. The police recovered from
them laptop with the accessories and Rs.10 lakhs. They were then brought to
Delhi and at Delhi he
got recovered explosives and other materials from the hideouts.
The crucial question that remains to be considered is whether the
confessional statement of Mohd. Afzal recorded by the DCP (PW 80) could be safely
acted upon. Certain common contentions applicable to the confessions of both
Afzal and Shaukat were raised in an attempt to demonstrate that the confession
would not have been true and voluntary. Firstly, it is pointed out that the
alleged confession was substantially the same as the alleged disclosure
statements (Exts. 64/1 & 64/2) which were recorded on the 16th December
itself. Even their signatures were obtained on these disclosure statements. If
so, when the accused were inclined to make a full-fledged confession on the
16th December and most of the investigation relating to hideouts and shops and
the recovery of incriminating materials was over by the next day, there was no
perceptible reason why the accused should not have been produced before a Judicial
Magistrate for recording a confession under the provisions of Cr.P.C. The only
reason, according to learned counsel for the appellants, is that they were
really not prepared to make the confession in a Court and, therefore, the
investigating authorities found the ingenuity of adding POTA offences at that
stage so as to get the confession recorded by a Police officer according to the
wishes of the investigators. It is also submitted that it is highly incredible
that Afzal, who is a surrendered militant, and who is alleged to have
maintained close contact with hard-core terrorists, could have, immediately
after the arrest by police, developed a feeling of repentance and come forward
voluntarily to make a confession implicating himself and others including a
lady who had nothing to do with the terrorists. Another comment made is that
the alleged meetings at Shaukat's place to discuss and finalize the plans to
attack Parliament with persons whose advice or association had nothing or
little to do with the execution of conspiracy is a highly improbable event. The
terrorists who came to Delhi on a Fidyaeen mission with a set purpose could not
have thought of going about here and there to evolve the strategies and plans
with persons like Gilani and Navjot (Shaukat's wife), risking unnecessary
publicity. It was not a natural, probable or reasonable conduct. It is also
contended that the language and tenor of the confessional statement gives
enough indication that it was not written to the dictation of appellants, but
it was a tailor made statement of which they had no knowledge.
Though these arguments are plausible and persuasive, it is not necessary
to rest our conclusion on these probabilities.
We may also refer to the contention advanced by Shri Ram Jethmalani,
learned senior counsel appearing for SAR Gilani with reference to the
confession of Afzal. Shri Jethmalani contended that Afzal in the course of his
interview with the TV and other media representatives, a day prior to recording
of a confession before the DCP, while confessing to the crime, absolved Gilani
of his complicity in the conspiracy. A cassette (Ext.DW4/A) was produced as the
evidence of his talk. DW-4, a reporter of Aaj Tak TV channel was examined. It
shows that Afzal was pressurized to implicate Gilani in the confessional
statement, according to the learned counsel. It is further contended by Shri
Jethmalani that the statement of Afzal in the course of media interview is
relevant and admissible under Section 11 of the Evidence Act. Learned counsel
for Afzal, Shri Sushil Kumar did not sail with Shri Jethmalani on this point,
realizing the implications of admission of the statements of Afzal before the
TV and press on his culpability. However, at one stage he did argue that the
implication of Gilani in the confessional statement conflicts with the
statement made by him to the media and therefore the confession is not true. We
are of the view that the talk which Afzal had with TV and press reporters
admittedly in the immediate presence of the police and while he was in police
custody, should not be relied upon irrespective of the fact whether the
statement was made to a Police Officer within the meaning of Section 162
Cr.P.C. or not. We are not prepared to attach any weight or credibility to the
statements made in the course of such interview pre-arranged by the police. The
police officials in their over- zealousness arranged for a media interview
which has evoked serious comments from the counsel about the manner in which
publicity was sought to be given thereby. Incidentally, we may mention that
PW607the DCP, who was supervising the investigation, surprisingly expressed his
ignorance about the media interview. We think that the wrong step taken by the
police should not
enure to the benefit or detriment of either the prosecution or the
accused. (iv) Procedural Safeguards7Compliance:
Now we look to the confession from other angles, especially from the
point of view of in-built procedural safeguards in Section 32 and the other
safeguards contained in Section 52. It is contended by the learned senior
counsel Mr. Gopal Subramanium that the DCP before recording the confession,
gave the statutory warning and then recorded the confession at a place away
from the police station, gave a few minutes time for reflection and only on
being satisfied that the accused Afzal volunteered to make confession in an
atmosphere free from threat or inducement that he proceeded to record the
confession to the dictation of Afzal. Therefore, it is submitted that there was
perfect compliance with sub-Sections (2)&(3). The next important step
required by sub-Section (4) was also complied with inasmuch as Afzal was
produced before the Additional Chief Metropolitan Magistrate7PW63 on the very
next day i.e. 22.12.2001 along with the confessional statements kept in a
sealed cover. The learned Magistrate opened the cover, perused the confessional
statements, called the maker of confession into his chamber, on being
identified by PW807ACP and made it known to the maker that he was not legally
bound to make the confession and on getting a positive response from him that
he voluntarily made the confession without any threat or violence, the ACMM
recorded the statement to that effect and drew up necessary proceedings vide
Exts.PW63/5 and PW63/6. It is pointed out that the accused, having had the
opportunity to protest or complain against the behaviour of police in
extracting the confession, did not say a single word denying the factum of
making the confession or any other relevant circumstances impinging on the
correctness of the confession. It is further pointed out that Afzal and the
other accused were also got medically examined by the police and the Doctor
found no traces of physical violence. It is therefore submitted that the steps
required to be taken under sub-Sections (4)&(5) were taken. However, the
learned counsel for the State could not dispute the fact that the accused Afzal
was not sent to judicial custody thereafter, but, on the request of the
I.O.7PW80, the ACMM sent back Afzal to police custody. Such remand was ordered
by the ACMM pursuant to an application made by PW80 that the presence of Afzal
in police custody was required for the purpose of further investigation. Thus,
the last and latter part of sub-Section (5) of Section 32 was undoubtedly
breached. To get over this difficulty, the learned counsel for the State made
two alternative submissions, both of which, in our view, cannot be sustained.
Firstly, it was contended that on a proper construction of the entirety
of sub-Section (5) of Section 32, the question of sending to judicial custody
would arise only if there was any complaint of torture and the medical
examination prima facie supporting such allegation. In other words, according
to the learned counsel, the expression 'thereafter' shall be read only in
conjunction with the latter part of sub-Section (5) beginning with 'and if
there is any complaint' and not applicable to the earlier part. In our view,
such a restrictive interpretation of sub-Section (5) is not at all warranted
either on a plain or literal reading or by any other canon of construction
including purposive construction. The other argument raised by the learned
counsel is that the provision regarding judicial custody, cannot be read to be
a mandatory requirement so as to apply to all situations. If the Magistrate is
satisfied that the confession appears to have been made voluntarily and the
person concerned was not subjected to any torture or intimidation, he need not
direct judicial custody. Having regard to the circumstances of this case, there
was nothing wrong in sending back Afzal to police custody. This contention
cannot be sustained on deeper scrutiny.
The clear words of the provision do not admit of an interpretation that
the judicial custody should be ordered by the Chief Judicial Magistrate only
when there is a complaint from the 'confession maker' and there appears to be
unfair treatment of such person in custody. As already stated, the obligation
to send the person whose alleged confession was recorded to judicial custody is
a rule and the deviation could at best be in exceptional circumstances. In the
present case, it does not appear that the ACMM (PW63) had in mind the
requirement of Section 32(5) as to judicial custody. At any rate, the order
passed by him on 22.12.2001 on the application filed by PW80 does not reflect
his awareness of such requirement or application of mind to the propriety of
police remand in the face of Section 32(5) of POTA. Compelling
circumstances to bypass the requirement of judicial custody are not apparent
from the record. The more important violation of the procedural safeguards lies
in the breach of sub-Section (2) read with sub-Section (4) of Section 52. It is
an undisputed fact that the appellants were not apprised of the right to
consult a legal practitioner either at the time they were initially arrested or
after the POTA was brought into picture. We may recall that the POTA offences
were added on 19th December and as a consequence thereof, investigation was
taken up by PW807an Asst. Commissioner of Police, who is competent to
investigate the POTA offences. But, he failed to inform the persons under
arrest of their right to consult a legal practitioner, nor did he afford any
facility to them to contact the legal practitioner. The opportunity of meeting
a legal practitioner during the course of interrogation within closed doors of
police station will not arise unless a person in custody is informed of his
right and a reasonable facility of establishing contact with a lawyer is
offered to him. If the person in custody is not in a position to get the
services of a legal practitioner by himself, such person is very well entitled
to seek free legal aid either by applying to the Court through the police or
the concerned Legal Services Authority, which is a statutory body. Not that the
police should, in such an event, postpone investigation indefinitely till his
request is processed, but what is expected of the police officer is to promptly
take note of such request and initiate immediate steps to place it before the
Magistrate or Legal Services Authority so that at least at some stage of
interrogation, the person in custody would be able to establish contact with a
legal practitioner. But, in the instant case, the idea of apprising the persons
arrested of their rights under sub- Section (2) and entertaining a lawyer into
the precincts of the police station did not at all figure in the mind of the
investigating officer. The reason for this refrain or crucial omission could
well be perceived by the argument of the learned senior counsel for the State
that the compliance with the requirements of Section 52(2) of POTA did not
arise for the simple reason that at the time of arrest, POTA was not applied.
But this argument ignores the fact that as soon as POTA was added and the
investigation commenced thereunder, the police officer was under a legal
obligation to go through all the procedural safeguards to the extent they could
be observed or implemented at that stage. The non- invocation of POTA in the
first instance cannot become a lever to deny the safeguards envisaged by
Section 52 when such safeguards could still be extended to the arrested person.
The expression 'the person arrested' does not exclude person initially arrested
for offences other than POTA and continued under arrest when POTA was invoked.
The 'person arrested' includes the person whose arrest continues for the
investigation of offences under POTA as well. It is not possible to give a
truncated interpretation to the expression 'person arrested' especially when
such interpretation has the effect of denying an arrested person the wholesome
safeguards laid down in Section 52. The importance of the provision to afford
the assistance of counsel even at the stage of custodial interrogation need not
be gainsaid. The requirement is in keeping with the Miranda ruling and the
philosophy underlying Articles 21, 20(3) & 22(1). This right cannot be
allowed to be circumvented by subtle ingenuities or innovative police
strategies. The access to a lawyer at the stage of interrogation serves as a
sort of counterweight to the intimidating atmosphere that surrounds the detenu
and gives him certain amount of guidance as to his rights and the obligations
of the police. The lawyer's presence could pave the way, to some extent, to
ease himself of the mental tension and trauma. In the felicitous words of
Finlay, CJ of Ireland in The People Vs. Healy [(1990) 2 IR 73]:
"The undoubted right of reasonable access to a solicitor enjoyed by
a person who is in detention must be interpreted as being directed towards the
vital function of ensuring that such a person is aware of his rights and has
the independent advice which would be appropriate in order to permit him to
reach a truly free decision as to his attitude to interrogation or to the
making of any statement, be it exculpatory or inculpatory. The availability of
advice must, in my view, be seen as a contribution, at least, towards some
measure of equality in the position of the detained person and his interrogators."
The Parliament advisedly introduced a Miranda ordained safeguard which
was substantially reiterated in Nandini Satpathy by expressly enacting in
sub-Sections (2)&(4) of Section 52 the obligation to inform the arrestee of
his right to consult a lawyer and to permit him to meet the lawyer. The avowed
object of such prescription was to introduce an element of fair and humane
approach to the prisoner in an otherwise stringent law with drastic
consequences to the accused. These provisions are not to be treated as empty
formalities. It cannot be said that the violation of these obligations under
sub- Sections (2) & (4) have no relation and impact on the confession. It
is too much to expect that a person in custody in connection with POTA offences
is supposed to know the fasciculus of the provisions of POTA regarding the
confessions and the procedural safeguards available to him. The presumption
should be otherwise. The lawyer's presence and advice, apart from providing
psychological support to the arrestee, would help him understand the
implications of making a confessional statement before the Police Officer and
also enable him to become aware of other rights such as the right to remain in
judicial custody after being produced before the Magistrate. The very fact that
he will not be under the fetters of police custody after he is produced before
the CJM pursuant to Section 32(4) would make him feel free to represent to the
CJM about the police conduct or the treatment meted out to him. The haunting fear
of again landing himself into police custody soon after appearance before the
CJM, would be an inhibiting factor against speaking anything adverse to the
police. That is the reason why the judicial custody provision has been
introduced in sub-Section (5) of Section 32. The same objective seems to be at
the back of sub-Section (3) of Section 164 of Cr.P.C., though the situation
contemplated therein is somewhat different.
The breach of the obligation of another provision, namely, sub-Section
(3) of Section 52 which is modelled on D.K.Basu's guidelines has compounded to
the difficulty in acting on the confession, Section 52(3) enjoins that the
information of arrest shall be immediately communicated by the Police Officer
to a family member or in his absence, to a relative of such person by telegram,
telephone or by any other means and this fact shall be recorded by the Police
Officer under the signature of the person arrested. PW807the I.O. under POTA
merely stated that "near relatives of the accused were informed about
their arrest as I learnt from the record". He was not aware whether any
record was prepared by the Police Officer arresting the accused as regards the
information given to the relatives. It is the prosecution case that Afzal's
relative by name Mohd. Ghulam Bohra of Baramulla was informed through phone. No
witness had spoken to this effect. A perusal of the arrest memo indicates that
the name of Ghulam Bohra and his phone number are noted as against the column
'relatives to be informed'. Afzal's arrest memo seems to have been attested by
Gilani's brother who according to the prosecution, was present at the police
cell. But, that does not amount to compliance with sub- Section (3) because he
is neither family member nor relation, nor even known to be a close friend. We
are pointing out this lapse for the reason that if the relations had been
informed, there was every possibility of those persons arranging a meeting with
the lawyer or otherwise seeking legal advice.
Another point which has a bearing on the voluntariness of confession is
the fact that sufficient time was not given for reflection after the accused
(Afzal/Shaukat) were produced before PW60 recording the confession. He stated
in the evidence that he gave only 5 to 10 minutes time to the accused for
thinking/reflection in reply to the question by the counsel for Shaukat
Hussain. It is true as contended by the learned counsel Mr. Gopal Subramanium
that there is no hard and fast rule regarding grant of time for reflection and
the rules and guidelines applicable to a confession under Section 164 Cr.P.C.
do not govern but in the present case, the time of 5 or 10 minutes is, by all
standards, utterly inadequate. Granting reasonable time for reflection before
recording a confession is one way of ensuring that the person concerned gets
the opportunity to deliberate and introspect once again when he is brought
before the prescribed authority for recording the confession. That it is one of
the relevant considerations in assessing the voluntariness of the confession is
laid down in Sarwan Singh Vs. State of Punjab [1957 SCR 953].
All these lapses and violations of procedural safeguards guaranteed in
the statute itself impel us to hold that it is not safe to act on the alleged
confessional statement of Afzal and place reliance on this item of
evidence on which the prosecution places heavy reliance.
The learned senior counsel for the State has laid considerable stress on
the fact that the appellants did not lodge any protest or complaint; on the
other hand, they reaffirmed the factum of making confession when they were
produced before the ACMM on the next day. It is further pointed out that as far
as Afzal is concerned, it took nearly seven months for him to refute and
retract the confession. After giving anxious consideration, we are unable to
uphold this contention. The omission to challenge the confessional statement at
the earliest before the Magistrate shall be viewed in the light of violation of
procedural safeguards which we have discussed in detail earlier.
As regards the delay in retracting, the first fact to be taken note of
is that the appellant Afzal was evidently not aware of the contents of the
confessional statement on the day on which he was produced before the ACMM
because the learned Magistrate did not make it available to him for perusal nor
the gist of which was made known to him. We find nothing in the proceedings of
the ACMM to that effect. It was only after the charge sheet was filed in the
Court on 14th May and a copy thereof was served to him that he became aware of
the details of the confessional statement. Then Afzal filed a petition before
the trial Court on 2.7.2002 stating that "I have given a statement in
front of police during custody and not before the DCP or ACP as mentioned in the
charge sheet. I found that my statement has been grossly manipulated and
twisted in a different form and formation by the police, especially my
statements regarding Afsan Guru and SAR Gilani. Therefore, I am requesting to
your honour to record my statement in the Court." This was followed by
another petition filed on 15th July, the main purpose of which was to highlight
that Mr. Gilani and the other accused had no direct or indirect connection.
Thus, we cannot hold that there was abnormal delay in disowning the confession,
the effect of which would be to impart credibility to the confessional
statement.
It is then pointed out that the grounds on which the confessional
statement was refuted by Afzal, are not consistent. Whereas Afzal stated in the
petition dated 2.7.2002 as above, in the course of his examination under
Section 313, Afzal stated that he signed on blank papers. We do not think that
this so-called discrepancy will give rise to an inference that the confessional
statement was true and voluntary. We have to look to the substance of what the
accused said while refuting the statement rather than building up a case on the
basis of some inconsistencies in the defence plea.
(v) Circumstances against Afzal
We shall now consider the circumstantial evidence against Afzal
independent of and irrespective of the confession.
The first circumstance is that Afzal knew who the deceased terrorists
were. He identified the dead bodies of the deceased terrorists. PW76 (Inspector
HS Gill) deposed that Afzal was taken to the mortuary of Lady Harding Medical
College and he identified the five terrorists and gave their names.
Accordingly, PW76 prepared an identification memo7Ext.PW76/1 which was signed
by Afzal. In the postmortem reports pertaining to each of the deceased
terrorists, Afzal signed against the column 'identified by'. On this aspect,
the evidence of PW76 remained un-shattered. In the course of his examination
under Section 313, Afzal merely stated that he was forced to identify by the
police. There was not even a suggestion put to PW76 touching on the genuineness
of the documents relating to identification memo. It may be recalled that all
the accused, through their counsel, agreed for admission of the postmortem
reports without formal proof. Identification by a person in custody of another
does not amount to making a statement falling within the embargo of Section 162
of Cr.P.C. It would be admissible under Section 8 of Evidence Act as a piece of
evidence relating to conduct of the accused person in identifying the dead
bodies of the terrorists. As pointed out by Chinnappa Reddy, J. in Prakash
Chand Vs. State (Delhi Admn.) [AIR 1979 SC 400]; "There is a clear
distinction between the conduct of a person against whom an offence is alleged,
which is admissible under Section 8 of the Evidence Act, if such conduct is
influenced by any fact in issue or relevant fact and the statement made to a
Police Officer in the course of an investigation which is hit by Section 162
Criminal Procedure Code. What is excluded by Section 162 Criminal
Procedure Code is the statement made to a Police Officer in the course
of investigation and not the evidence relating to the conduct of an accused
person (not amounting to a statement) when confronted or questioned by a Police
Officer during the course of an investigation. For example, the evidence of the
circumstance, simpliciter, that an accused person led a police officer and
pointed out the place where stolen articles or weapons which might have been
used in the commission of the offence were found hidden, would be admissible as
conduct, under Section 8 of the Evidence Act, irrespective of whether any
statement by the accused contemporaneously with or antecedent to such conduct
falls within the purview of Section 27 of the EvidenceAct (vide Himachal
Pradesh Administration Vs. Om Prakash [AIR 1972 SC 975]).
The second circumstance is the frequent telephonic contacts which Afzal
had established with Mohammed. Even minutes before the attack, as many as three
calls were made by Mohammed to Afzal from his phone No. 9810693456 which was
operated with the instrument having IMEI No. 35066834011740(2) that was
recovered from Mohammed's body, as seen from Ext. PW 35/2. The SIM Card
relating thereto was also found in Mohammed's purse. Not only that, there is
clear evidence to the effect that the mobile instruments were being freely
exchanged between Afzal and Mohammed and other terrorists. This is the third
circumstance.
Before going into the details on these aspects, it may be noted that the
handset found in the truck in which Afzal was travelling and which he pointed out
to the police was having IMEI No. 350102209452430. It was a mobile phone
instrument of Nokia make and it was being used for the operation of phone No.
9811489429. It is Ext.P-84. The evidence as to recovery was furnished by PW61
and PW62. Its IMEI number and the cell phone number with which it was being
operated is established by the evidence of investigating officer coupled with
the call records filed by the witnesses. It is also clear from the call record
that it was the last instrument on which the said number ####BODY####589429 had
been operated as late as 13.12.2001.
The fact that the instrument bearing number
####BODY####5####BODY####5####BODY####552430 was being carried by Afzal in the
truck would give rise to a reasonable inference that the cell-phone number with
which the instrument was being operated was that of Afzal and the said phone
number was under his use. The appellant, Afzal, apart from denying the recovery
at Srinagar7which denial cannot be said to be true, did not account for the
custody of the phone. The said phone number cannot be related to Shaukat who
was also travelling with Afzal because Shaukat was having his own phones which
were seized from his residence on 15th December. In the circumstances, even a
presumption under Section 114 can be drawn that the number 9811489429 was at
all material times being used by the accused, Afzal.
The facts that the SIM card was not found in the mobile phone and that
the IMEI number of the instrument was not noted by PW 61 cannot be the grounds
to disconnect Afzal from the custody of the said phone. The IMEI number found
on the phone was sent to trace the number of the cell phone. One more point has
to be clarified. In the seizure memo (Ext. 61/4), the IMEI number of Nokia
phone found in the truck was noted as ####BODY####5####BODY####552432. That
means the last digit '2' varies from the call records wherein it was noted as
####BODY####5####BODY####552430. Thus, there is a seeming discrepancy as far as
the last digit is concerned. This discrepancy stands explained by the evidence
of PW 78 6 a computer Engineer working as Manager, Siemens. He stated, while
giving various details of the 15 digits, that the last one digit is a spare
digit and the last digit, according to GSM specification should be transmitted
by the mobile phone as '0'. The witness was not cross-examined.
This mobile number ..89429 was also used in the instrument No. IMEI
449269219639010 recovered from the deceased terrorist Raja and was then used in
the handset having number 350102209452430(2) i.e. the instrument recovered from
the truck at Srinagar, as pointed out by the High Court at paragraph 325 of the
judgment. The instrument recovered from Raja was the one used by Afzal i.e. on
phone No.####BODY####589429 between 6.11.2001 and 23.11.2001. The mobile
instrument recovered from Rana (IMEI 449269405808650) (Cell phone
No.9810302438) was used by Mohammed who in turn was using the phone of Afzal
also. This was the phone that was purchased by Afzal from PW497Kamal Kishore.
Now, we shall proceed to give further details of the phone calls and the
instruments used, more or less in a chronological order insofar as they throw
light on the close association of Afzal with the deceased terrorists. The SIM
Cards related to the mobile phones bearing Nos. 9810693456 and 9810565284 were
recovered from the purse of the deceased terrorist Mohammed. The first call
from the first number was from Mohammed to a Delhi landline number on
21.11.2001. The first call to the second number was from Bombay on 24.11.2001.
It shows that these two phones were activated by Mohammed in the third week of
November, 2001 when he was in Delhi. It is established from the call records
that the second call from the Bombay number to Mohammed was received when the
said mobile number (9810565284) was being used in the handset having IMEI No.
449269219639010(2). This is the same handset which was used by Afzal with his
phone number 9811489429 (vide Ext.P36/3). Thus, it is clear that on 24.11.2001,
Mohammed was in control of the handset which was being used by Afzal which
reveals the nexus between both. Evidence of the computer experts PWs 72 &
73 together with their reports (Ext.PW73/1 & 73/2) would reveal that a file
named Radhika.bmp was created on the laptop (Ext.P83) on 21.11.2001 wherein an
identity card in the name of Sanjay Sharma is found and it contains the address
No.10, Christian Colony, where Mohammed was staying and the phone No.
9811489429 (belonging to Afzal). The other I.Cards recovered from the body of
the deceased terrorist which were fake ones, were also prepared from the same
laptop as established by the testimony of PW72 and PW59. Thus, together with
the activation of phones, simultaneous activity on the laptop to create bogus
I.Cards was going on at the same time i.e. 21.11.2001 onwards. On 28.11.2001,
Afzal, having phone No. 9811489429 called Mohammed to his No. 9810693456. Then
there was a lull from 30.11.2001 till 6.12.2001. This gap is explained by the
prosecution by referring to the confessional statement of Afzal wherein he said
that towards the end of November, he (Afzal) went to Kashmir and came back to
Delhi along with two other terrorists in the first week of December. But as the
confessional statement is not taken into account, we cannot take note of that explanation.
On 5th December, 2001, Mohammed called two Dubai numbers from his mobile phone
No. 9810565284 and the call record7Ext.PW35/4 would show that Mohammed made
those calls to Dubai by using the same handset which was being used by Afzal
for his number 9811489429. PW49, who identified Afzal in the Court, testified
to the fact that Afzal had purchased Motorola mobile phone of model 180 from
his shop on 4.12.2001 which tallies with the description of the phone bearing
the IMEI number referred to above.
The next point to be noted is that the said phone instrument bearing
IMEI No. ####BODY####5####BODY####539010 was finally recovered from the
deceased terrorist Raja as per the seizure memo (Ext.PW2/2). A perusal of the
call record discloses that the said instrument was being used by the accused
Afzal (with his number ...89429) till the noon of 12.12.2001. It shows that
such interchange of phones would not have been possible, but for the meeting of
the Afzal with the slain terrorists on 12th December. There were calls to the
mobile number 9810693456 the SIM Card of which was recovered from the body of
Mohammed vide Ext.PW4/8 and which was being operated from the instrument IMEI
No. 449269405808650 (Ext.PW35/5). On 7th & 8th December, Afzal called
Mohammed seven times from his phone No. 9811489429 to Mohammed's No. 9810693456
and the said mobile of Mohammed was being used in IMEI No. ####BODY####5808650
(Ext.PW35/5). Thus Mohammed used the same Motorola phone (Ext.P28) which was
finally recovered from the deceased Raja vide seizure memo (Ext.PW2/2) on the
SIM card (described as 'Magic Card') for the No. 9810693456 and the said card
was recovered from Mohammed vide Ext.PW4/8. As per the testimony of PW49, the
said Ext.P28 was purchased by Afzal. It is pertinent to note that the said
instrument was never used by Afzal though it was purchased by him but it was
being used by Mohammed and it ultimately reached Raja.
The deposition of PW44 discloses that Afzal, who was identified by him
in the Court, came to his shop on 7th or 8th December and purchased a mobile
phone of J70 model of Sony make which he identified as Ext.P-37 seized under
Ext.PW4/14 from the body of Mohammed. Its IMEI number was
35066834011747/2 and its cell-phone number was found to be 9810511085. This fact
would only lead to the inference that contemporaneous to the crucial incident
of 13th December, Afzal met Mohammed and supplied the handset of the mobile
phone. That apart, we find the exchange of calls between them. From the call
records in Parts VI & IX, it is evident that Afzal was in touch with
Mohammed over phone on seven occasions on 7th and 8th December and they were
using the two phones with the Cell numbers referred to supra, though, two or
three calls of them were of very short duration. It may also be noticed that a
satellite phone contacted Afzal for a short-while on his number 9811489429 and
the same satellite phone contacted Mohammed on his phone No. 9810693456 on 10th
December for five minutes. On 12th December, Mohammed contacted Raja for 83
seconds and thereafter a satellite phone contacted Mohammed for 11 minutes and
the same satellite phone contacted Raja twice for about 3= minutes. This is
borne out by call records at volume VI. The phone number of Raja was 9810510816
as discovered from the phone instrument recovered from his body.
Then we come to the crucial day i.e. 13.12.2001. Mohammed called Afzal
thrice at 10.43, 11.08 and 11.25 a.m., i.e. just before the attack on the
Parliament. This is borne out by the call records of 9810693456 and 9811489429
(phones traceable to Mohammed and Afzal, respectively). At about the same time,
there was exchange of calls between Afzal and Shaukat on their phone numbers
.####BODY####5.89429 and ####BODY####5####BODY####5.73506. The call records at
Part IX, Page 20 pertaining to 98114894297the user of which can be traced to
Afzal and the instruments recovered would reveal that the SIM Card pertaining
to the said mobile number (####BODY####589429) was activated on 6th November
and was used on the handset bearing IMEI No. 449269219639010 recovered from the
deceased terrorist Raja as per Ex. PW2/2. The call record would further show
that its user was discontinued on 29th November till 7th December, when, again,
it was put to use on 12th December. The last call was at 12 noon. Thereafter,
the SIM Card pertaining to this number (i.e. ####BODY####5.89429) was used in
the handset No. 350102209452430, which is the instrument (Ext.P84) recovered
from the truck at Srinagar, on being pointed out by Afzal. The picture that
emerges is this: The fact that an instrument used by Afzal (with the phone
number 9811489429) till 12.12.2001 was recovered from one of the deceased
terrorists on the date of incident, reveals that Afzal would have necessarily
met the deceased terrorist between the afternoon of 12th December and the
morning of 13th December.
One point urged by Shri Sushil Kumar is that although the sanction order
authorized the interception of Phone No. ####BODY####5..06722, there is no
evidence regarding the details of investigation of the calls made or received
from that number. No question was put to the witnesses on this point. It is
quite probable that the investigator would have entertained some suspicion in
this regard and would have, by way of caution sought permission to intercept.
That does not cast a cloud on the prosecution case built up on the basis of the
call records pertaining to the phones used by the accused. We can draw no
adverse inference from the fact that the details of aforementioned number was not
given.
(vii) Hideouts and recoveries
The other circumstances which prominently shed light on the involvement
of the accused Afzal relate to the discovery of the abodes or hideouts of the
deceased terrorists and the recovery of various incriminating articles
therefrom as well as the identification of certain shops from where the
appellant and one or the other deceased terrorist purchased various items used
for preparation of explosives etc. These are spoken to by PW767Inspector Gill,
the landlords of the concerned premises and the shopkeepers. The informations
furnished to the Investigating Officers leading to the discovery of facts and
the conduct of the accused in pointing out the places where the terrorists
stayed are admissible either under Section 27 or Section 8 of the Evidence Act
and they supplement the evidence furnished by the I.Os., the landlords and the
shopkeepers.
Before proceeding further, we may advert to Section 8 of the Evidence
Act. Section 8 insofar as it is relevant for our purpose makes the conduct of
an accused person relevant, if such conduct influences or is influenced by any
fact in issue or relevant fact. It could be either previous or subsequent
conduct.
There are two Explanations to the Section, which explains the ambit of
the word 'conduct'. They are:
Explanation 1 : The word 'conduct' in this Section does not include
statements, unless those statements accompany and explain acts other than
statements, but this explanation is not to affect the relevancy of statements
under any other Section of this Act.
Explanation 2 : When the conduct of any person is relevant, any
statement made to him or in his presence and hearing, which affects such
conduct, is relevant.
The conduct, in order to be admissible, must be such that it has close nexus
with a fact in issue or relevant fact. The Explanation 1 makes it clear that
the mere statements as distinguished from acts do not constitute 'conduct'
unless those statements "accompany and explain acts other than
statements". Such statements accompanying the acts are considered to be
evidence of res gestae. Two illustrations appended to Section 8 deserve special
mention.
(f) The question is, whether A robbed B.
The facts that, after B was robbed, C said in A's presence7"the
police are coming to look for the man who robbed B", and that immediately
afterwards A ran away, are relevant.
(i) A is accused of a crime.
The facts that, after the commission of the alleged crime, he absconded,
or was in possession of property or the proceeds of property acquired by the
crime, or attempted to conceal things which were or might have been used in
committing it, are relevant.
We have already noticed the distinction highlighted in Prakash Chand's
case (supra) between the conduct of an accused which is admissible under
Section 8 and the statement made to a police officer in the course of an
investigation which is hit by Section 162 Cr.P.C. The evidence of the
circumstance, simplicitor, that the accused pointed out to the police officer,
the place where stolen articles or weapons used in the commission of the
offence were hidden, would be admissible as 'conduct' under Section 8
irrespective of the fact whether the statement made by the accused
contemporaneously with or antecedent to such conduct, falls within the purview of
Section 27, as pointed out in Prakash Chand's case. In Om Prakash case (supra)
[AIR 1972 SC 975], this Court held that "even apart from the admissibility
of the information under Section, the evidence of the Investigating Officer and
the Panchas that the accused had taken them to PW11 (from whom he purchased the
weapon) and pointed him out and as corroborated by PW11 himself would be
admissible under Section 8 as 'conduct' of the accused". Coming to the
details of evidence relating to hideouts and recoveries, it is to be noted that
the accused Afzal is alleged to have made a disclosure statement to
PW667Inspector Mohan Chand Sharma on 16th December, 2001. It is marked as
Ext.PW64/1. In the said disclosure statement, all the details of his
involvement are given and it is almost similar to the confessional statement
recorded by the DCP. The last paragraph of the statement reads thus: "I
can come along and point out the places or shops of Delhi wherefrom I along
with my other associates, who had executed the conspiracy of terrorist attack
on the Parliament, had purchased the chemicals and containers for preparing IED
used in the attack, the mobile phones, the SIM Cards and the Uniforms. I can
also point out the hideouts of the terrorists in Delhi. Moreover, I can
accompany you and point out the places at Karol Bagh wherefrom we had purchased
the motorcycle and Ambassador car. For the time being, I have kept the said
motorcycle at Lal Jyoti Apartments, Rohini with Nazeer and I can get the same
recovered. ####BODY####5"
This statement has been signed by Mohd. Afzal. In fact it is not
required to be signed by virtue of the embargo in Section 162(1). The fact that
the signature of the accused Afzal was obtained on the statement does not,
however, detract from its admissibility to the extent it is relevant under
Section 27.
We shall now consider the details of evidence on these aspects. PW767
I.O. deposed that the two accused persons, namely, Afzal / Shaukat led him to
the following places:
(i) Hideout at 2nd floor, A-97, Gandhi Vihar (PW34)
(ii) Hideout at 2nd floor, 281, Indira Vihar (PW31 & PW32)
(iii) Shop of PW407Anil Kumar from where Ammonium Nitrate was purchased.
(iv) Shop of PW427Ramesh Advani from where Silver powder was purchased.
(v) Shop of PW417Ajay Kumar7Sawan Dry Fruits from where dry fruits were
purchased.
(vi) Shop of PW437Sunil Kumar Gupta at Fatehpuri where Sujata Mixer was
purchased. (vii) Shop at Hamilton Road from where red light was purchased.
(viii) Shop of PW297Gupta Auto Deals from where motorcycle HR51E5768 was
purchased.
(ix) Shop of PW447Sandeep Chaudhary at Ghaffar Market from where Sony
cellphone was purchased.
(x) Shop of PW207Harpal Singh at Karol Bagh from where Ambassador Car
bearing DL 3CJ 1527 was purchased.
(xi) Shop of PW497Kamal Kishore from where Motorola cell phone and a SIM
card were purchased.
Now, we shall refer to the specific details of evidence in this regard.
PW767I.O. deposed to the fact that Afzal and Shaukat pointed out the 2nd floor
of A97, GANDHI VIHAR as the place where the deceased terrorists stayed. This is
recorded by PW76 in the memo marked as Ext.PW34/1. PW76 deposed that on his
request, the landlord of the house7PW34 accompanied him to the 2nd floor and
the lock of the house was broken and the premises searched in the presence of
PW34. The various articles recovered and seized consequent upon the search of
the premises are recorded in Ext.PW34/1. They are: (a) 3 electronic detonators
(Ext.P60/1, 60/2 & 60/3). (b) two packets of silver powder bearing the
address 'Tola Ram & Sons, 141, Tilak Bazar, Delhi' (Ext.P61). (c) A bucket
(Ext.P62) of prepared explosive material. Sample of explosive material is
Ext.P63. (d) two boxes containing Sulphur (Ext.P64 & P65). (e) two
cardboard cartons (Ext.P66 & P67) containing 20 jars each of Ammonium
Nitrate of 500 grams each (Ext.P68/1 to Ext.P68/38) (one jar was taken out from
each carton as a sample). (f) Yamaha motorcycle bearing No.DL-1S-K-3122
(Ext.P76) found at the gate of the house and seized as per Ext.PW34/2. (g) Maps
of Delhi city and Chanakyapuri area found in the room vide Ext.P34/3. (h)
Police uniforms and police beret caps (P73 series). (i) Sujata Mixer Grinder
with three jars (Ext.P72) seized as per Ext.PW34/4. PW34 confirmed this fact in
his deposition. In addition, PW34 identified Afzal and Shaukat in the Court and
stated the following facts: That Afzal had introduced himself under an assumed
name of Maqsood and took the 2nd floor on rent in the first week of November,
2001. That Shaukat and three or four boys used to visit Afzal at that premises
quite often and on the crucial day i.e. 13.12.2001, at 10 am, Afzal, Shaukat
and four more persons left in an Ambassador car and Afzal had returned a
shortwhile later and then left the premises subsequently. That the deceased
terrorist Mohammed, whose photograph he identified, was also residing with
Afzal sometime after the premises was taken on rent.
The High Court accepted the testimony of PW34 including the
identification of the deceased Mohammed by photograph (Ext.PW1/20). He
could not identify the remaining four terrorists. Next, we come to the
evidence in regard to the premises at INDIRA VIHAR and the recoveries
therefrom. Mohd. Afzal, while being examined under Section 313 Cr.P.C. admitted
that the house at 281, Indira Vihar was taken on rent by him after his return
to Delhi after Eed. PW76 deposed to the fact that Afzal and Shaukat led him and
the police party to the premises at 281, Indira Vihar as the place where Afzal
and the five slain terrorists stayed. The memo of pointing out is Ext.PW32/1.
PW32, who is the landlord, stated that on 16th December, 2001, the accused
Afzal and Shaukat whom he identified correctly, were brought to his house by
the police and Afzal told the police that he was the landlord. Thereafter, the
police took him and the two accused to the 2nd floor which was found locked and
as there was no key, the police broke the lock. PW32 then stated that on a
search of the premises, a number of articles as recorded in the memo of
seizure7Ext.PW32/1 were found. The articles recovered as a result of search
were, (i) three electric detonators attached with a wire kept in a box, (ii)
six pressure detonators fitted in a plastic box, (iii) two silver powder
packets of thousand grams each with the slips containing the name of 'Tolaram
and Sons, Tilak Bazar', (iv) two boxes of sulphur, (v) a motorcycle of Yamaha
make parked near the gate of the house, (vi) household articles etc. PW 32
attested the seizure memo.
The motorcycle was seized as per the seizure memo7Ext.PW32/2. It
transpires from the evidenc eof PW53 who is an official of the Road Transport
Department read with Ext.PW53/1 that the said motorcycle was registered in the
name of Shaukat Hussain.
In connection with the renting of the house at Indira Vihar, PW31 who is
a property dealer, was examined. He stated that Mohd. Afzal approached him and
on 9.12.2001 he fixed up the house of PW32 at Indira Vihar on a rent of Rs.4000
p.m. He identified Mohd. Afzal. PW327the landlord confirmed in his deposition
that the 2nd floor of the house was taken on rent by Mohd. Afzal through PW31.
He further stated that he imposed a condition that the tenant should reside
with his family only. Having found some five or six other persons on
11.12.2001, he questioned Afzal on which he replied that they were his friends
and they would leave soon and thereafter he would be bringing his family. On
12.12.2001, Afzal left the premises locking the door informing him that he
would bring his family and children after Eed. Then he speaks to the details of
search and seizure. He was a signatory to the seizure memos Exts.PW32/1 and
PW32/2.
The High Court held that the factum of Mohd. Afzal taking the premises
on tenancy, the recovery of articles and detonators on 16.12.2001 and the fact
that five or six persons were visiting the premises were found to be
established by the testimony of PWs 31 & 32. Though PW32 is supposed to
have identified the persons found with Afzal by the photographs of dead bodies
of terrorists, we do not attach any weight to this part of the evidence because
the police showed the photos and told him that they were the photographs of
deceased terrorists. He also did not take into account this part of testimony
of PW32. At this stage, we may refer to the evidence of the experts of Forensic
Science Laboratory, Chandigarh. PW22 testified in regard to the explosives
contained in I.E.D. and the car bomb which was recovered from the scene of
offence on 13th December, 2001. From his report7Ext.PW21/1 and PW21/2, it is
evident that Ammonium Nitrate, Aluminum/Silver powder and Sulphur was found in
the explosives. The testimony of PW24 establishes that the samples of chemicals
(collected from the hideouts) were Aluminum Nitrate, Sulphur and Silver powder.
The same were found in the unused explosives.
Amongst the hideouts furnishing the links of association between the
accused Afzal and the deceased terrorist Mohammed is the one in the Boys'
hostel, Christian Colony. It is in the evidence of PW38 who was running an STD
booth at Christian Colony that Afzal and Shaukat met him and made enquiries
about the availability of rented accommodation. Then on 6.11.2001 he took him
to PW37 who was running a hostel at B-41, Christian Colony. PW38 identified
Afzal and Shaukat. PW37 deposed that he let out a room on the Ground Floor and
when he went to the hostel on 26th November, he found one Kashmiri boy in the
room who disclosed his name as Ruhail Ali Shah. It may be noted that the
witness identified the said Ruhail Ali Shah as the deceased terrorist Mohammed
by reference to his photograph (Ext.PW29/5) in the presence of police and in
the Court. The identity card of Ruhail Ali Shah
(Ext.PW4/4) shown to him was also identified and it is the card that was
found at the spot of offence. PW37 also stated that he had seen Afzal and
Shaukat visiting the so called Ruhail Ali Shah. It may be noted that the said
room in Christian Colony was taken on rent at about the same time when the
premises at Gandhi Vihar was hired. The testimony of this witness was found to
be reliable by the High Court. We see no good reason to discard his evidence on
the ground that he did not produce the record of their stay. Now we turn our
attention to the evidence given by the shopkeepers in regard to the purchase of
various things by the accused Afzal himself or in the company of others.
(vii) Purchases from shops
The next circumstance which provides important links in the chain of
circumstantial evidence is that the accused Afzal led the Investigating Officer
to various places from where the incriminatory articles found in the premises
at Gandhi Vihar and Indira Vihar and at the scene of offence were purchased.
Now we shall briefly refer to the evidence in regard to the purchase of
chemicals used in explosives and the Mixture-Grinder utilized for preparing the
explosive substance. PW-76 recorded in Ex. 40/1 dated 17.12.01 that Afzal
furnished information that he had visited the shop of PW-40 along with deceased
accomplice Hamza at Tilak Bazar and purchased 50kg of ammonium nitrate packed
in = kg. boxes and that he would show the shop. Accordingly, Afzal led the
Police to the shop of PW-40 and identified the proprietor which fact is
relevant and admissible under Section 8 of the Evidence Act. PW-40 identified the
accused 6 Afzal, in the Court and stated that he came to his shop on 6.12.01 to
purchase ammonium nitrate and that he placed an order for 50kg, paid an advance
of Rs. 800/- and came the next day to take delivery of the same. On 7.12.01, he
came with one more person, paid the balance and took the delivery of 50kg
ammonium nitrate which was packed in = kg plastic bags.
In view of the short time gap and the order for a large quantity, there
is no reason to doubt the identification of Mohd. Afzal 6 PW 40. We have
already seen that ammonium nitrate was one of the chemicals recovered from the
premises at Gandhi Vihar. PW-40 also identified the deceased Hamza by his
photograph - Ext.40/2. According to PW-40, it is he who accompanied Afzal the
next day. However, in the memo of pointing out which is Ext.40/1, it was
recorded that Afzal disclosed that he visited the shop with Haider. This
discrepancy or mistake in recording the name does not make a dent on the
veracity of evidence of PW-40 on the point of identification of photograph in
Ext. 40/2. The High Court accepted the evidence of PW-40. Then, about the
purchase of silver powder, PW-76 recorded in Ex. 42/1 that Afzal disclosed
having purchased the silver powder from the shop of PW-42. It may be stated
that on the packets of silver powder (Ex.P/51), the name and address 'Tolaram
& Sons, 141, Tilak Bazar' was written. Thus, the name and address of the
shop was already known to the Police. Therefore, Section 27 cannot be pressed
into service. However, the conduct of Afzal in pointing out the shop and its
proprietor (PW42) would be relevant under Section 8 of the Evidence Act. PW- 42
in his deposition testified to the factum of purchase of 50 kgs of silver
powder by Afzal on 11.12.01. The witness identified the seized samples as
having been sold by him. He also identified Afzal. He specifically stated that
the quantity purchased by him being large, Afzal's presence was very much there
in his memory. It may be recalled that silver powder was recovered from the
premises at Indira Vihar. The samples seized from Indira Vihar were identified
by PW-42. It is to be noted that Aluminium powder was one of the ingredients
used in the IEDs found in the possession of the deceased terrorists at the
Parliament complex.
Another item of purchase was dry fruits. Three polythene packets of dry
fruits bearing the name of 'Sawan Dry Fruits' (Ex. P/10) and having the address
6507, Fatehpuri Chowk were recovered at the scene of offence near the bodies of
the deceased. PW-76 stated that Afzal led them to the shop of Sawan Dry Fruits.
PW417the salesman, gave evidence regarding the transaction of sale on 11.12.01.
He identified the accused Afzal as the person who had purchased the dry fruits.
The witness also identified the photograph of Rana even as that of the person
who accompanied Afzal. PW41 also stated that Afzal was in the shop for nearly
half an hour. The High Court, while observing that there was nothing to
discredit the evidence of PW-41, it,
however, ignored his testimony on a tenuous ground that the Police were
already aware of the source of purchase of the dry fruits. Though there was no
discovery within the meaning of Section 27, there is no reason why the evidence
of PW-41 should be eschewed on that account. However, in regard to the identification
of the pfotograph of deceased terrorist, his evidence does not inspire
confidence, in view of the time lag of 8 months and the manner in which the
answer was sought to be elicited from him. Then, we have the evidence of
purchase of Sujata Mixer-Grinder (Ext.P72) which was found in the hideout at
Gandhi Vihar. PW-76 deposed that Afzal took the investigating team to an
electrical shop at Fatehpuri from where the Mixer-Grinder was purchased. The
memo of pointing out is Ex. 76/2. The pointing out of the shop and the
identification of the owner of the shop wherefrom the purchase was made are
relevant facts to show the conduct of the accused referred to in Section 8 of
the Evidence Act. In any case, the evidence of PW-43 establishes the fact that Afzal
bought the Mixer-Grinder of Sujata make on 7.12.01. The relevant cash memo was
filed by him. The witness identified Afzal in the Court and also the
Mixer-Grinder. The High Court has accepted the testimony of this witness. Thus,
the nexus between the Mixer-Grinder which was recovered from the premises at
Gandhi Vihar and the one purchased by Afzal from the shop of PW-43 stands
established by the evidence on record. The evidence of the report of the
experts, namely PWs 22 & 24 establish, as held by the High Court, that the
composition of chemicals found sticking to the jar of the mixer grinder and the
chemicals in the bucket were of the same composition as was the composition of
the chemicals in the explosives seized from the deceased terrorists at Parliament
House.
Another item of purchase was a motorcycle of the Yamaha make bearing
registration No.HR-51-E-5768. PW76 stated that on 18.12.2001 the accused Afzal
took the investigating team to Gupta Auto Deals at Karol Bagh from where the
said motorcycle was purchased and he pointed out the shop owner7 PW29. The memo
of pointing out is Ext.PW29/1. This conduct of Afzal is relevant under Section
8 of the Evidence Act. PW29 deposed that four persons including a lady came to
his shop in the noon time to see the motorcycle. After taking trial run, they
went away and in the evening two persons came and purchased the motorcycle for
Rs.20,000/-. As already noticed, the said motorcycle was found at A-97, Gandhi
Vihar and the same was seized by the I.O. The witness handed over the book
containing the delivery receipt (Ext.29/2 & 29/3) to the police, which were
filed in the Court as PW29/2 & PW29/3. The witness identified Afzal and
Shaukat in the Court and the deceased terrorist Mohammed from the photograph
(Ext.29/5). He was however unable to identify the lady in view of the fact that
she was at a distance. The High Court rightly took the view that in view of
what was narrated by the witness, the identification of the accused and the
deceased terrorist was quite probable. It was not a case of 'fleeting glance'.
This is a discrepancy between the seizure memo (PW29/4) dated 19.12.2001 and
the statement of PW29 under Section 161 Cr.P.C. that he handed over the papers
on 18.12.2001. This apparent contradiction was not pointed out to the witness
and no question was asked about it. The next important circumstance against the
accused Afzal is his association with Mohammed in purchasing the Ambassador car
with registration No.DL-3CJ-1527 from PW20. The fact that the said car was used
by the slain terrorists for entering the Parliament with arms and explosives,
is not in dispute. PW20 after hearing the news that the car with the said
number was used by the terrorists, he straight went to the Parliament Street
Police Station along with the copies of documents. Having learned that his SHO
was at the Parliament House, he went there and met the SHO at the gate and
passed on information to him that the car was sold by him on 11.12.2001 to one
Ashiq Hussain Khan. He identified the car, which was lying at gate No.11, then
he handed over the documents pertaining to the car which were seized under the
memo7Ext.PW1/7. The documents were later filed in the Court. PW20 correctly
identified the accused Afzal as the person who had come with Ashiq Hussain Khan
for the purchase of car. The delivery receipt of the car issued by Ashiq
Hussain Khan is Ext.PW1/6. The delivery receipt was signed by Afzal as a
witness. The signature of Afzal on the delivery receipt is proved by the
analysis of his handwriting by the expert7PW23. This is apart from the
testimony of PW20. In the course of examination under Section 313 Cr.P.C.,
Afzal admitted that on 11.12.2001 he accompanied
Mohammed to the shop of PW20 for purchasing a secondhand car but later
he denied it. It is also worthy to note that Afzal did not let the amicus to
put a suggestion that he had not visited the shop of PW20. PW20 deposed that he
had taken photocopy of the I.Card and a coloured photo of Ashiq Hussain Khan,
which are Exts.PW25/4 & PW20/3. PW20 further deposed that the dead body
lying at Gate No.1 was of the same person who had introduced himself as Ashiq
Hussain Khan while purchasing the car. When he was shown Ext.PW4/3 which is the
I.Card in the name of Ashiq Hussain Khan recovered from the deceased terrorist
Mohammed, PW20 confirmed that it was the same I.Card that was shown to him. The
High Court held that the evidence of PW20, who was an independent witness, was
in no manner tainted and held that Afzal was involved in the purchase of the car
used by the terrorists to enter the Parliament House. This conclusion was
reached by the High Court even after excluding the evidence of PW23, Principal
Scientific Officer who confirmed that the signatures on the delivery
receipt7Ext.PW1/6 tallied with his specimen signatures. In this context, a
contention was raised before the High Court that in view of Section 27 of POTA,
specimen signature should not have been obtained without the permission of the
Court. In reply to this contention urged before the High Court, Mr. Gopal
Subramanium, the learned senior counsel for the State clarified that on the
relevant date, when the specimen signatures of Afzal were obtained, the
investigation was not done under the POTA provisions and de hors the provisions
of POTA, there was no legal bar against obtaining the handwriting samples. The
learned counsel relied upon by the 11 Judge Bench decision of this Court in
State of Bombay Vs. Kattikalu Oghad [1962 (3) SCR 10] in support of his
contention that Article 23 of the Constitution was not infringed by taking the
specimen handwriting or signature or thumb impressions of a person in custody.
Reference has also drawn to the decision of this Court in State of U.P. Vs.
Boota Singh [(1979) 1 SCC 31]. We find considerable force in this contention
advanced by Mr. Gopal Subramanium. In fact this aspect was not seriously
debated before us.
The purchase of mobile cellular phone instruments by Afzal in the shops
of PW44 and PW49, accompanied by Shaukat, is another important circumstance that
can be put against him. As already noticed, these mobile instruments found
their way to one or the other deceased terrorists and they were being
interchangeably used by Afzal, Mohammed and Rana. The evidence of PW76 coupled
with Ext.PW44/1 (pointing out memo) reveals that the accused Afzal took the
police party to shop No.26, Gaffar Market and pointed it out as the shop from
which he purchased the mobile phone handset of Sony make. The conduct of the
accused in pointing out the shop and identifying the shop owner is relevant
under Section 8 of the Evidence Act. PW44 - the shop owner identified Afzal and
the mobile phone (Ext.P37) sold to him on 7/8.12.2001. The said instrument
(Ext.P37) was recovered from the body of the deceased terrorist Mohammed vide
Ext.PW4/14. He was confronted with some discrepancy as to the exact date of
purchase, which does not appear to us to be very material. The fact that the
transaction was unaccounted is also not a ground to eschew his evidence
especially when the High Court found that his evidence was trustworthy. There
is no warrant for the further observation of the High Court that independent
corroboration of his testimony was lacking and therefore the evidence was
liable to be ignored. Regarding the purchase of Motorola mobile phone
(Ext.P28), PW76 deposed that on 19.12.2001, the accused Afzal led the
investigating officials to the shop of PW49 at B-10, Model Town from where the
said mobile phone was purchased. The memo of pointing out is Ext.PW49/1. The
conduct of the accused in leading the I.O. to the shop of PW49 and identifying
him as the shop owner becomes relevant under Section 8 of the Evidence Act.
PW49, while identifying Afzal and Shaukat in the Court deposed about the sale
of the phone and one SIM Card to the said persons. The said phone which was
sold by PW49 to the accused was recovered from the deceased terrorist Rana vide
Ext.PW2/2. This statement of the witness was assailed on the ground that the
SIM Card pertaining to the No. 9811489429 was stated to have been sold on
4.12.2001. However, the call records pertaining to this number show that the
phone was active since 6.11.2001. The High Court refuted this criticism by
observing thus:
"####BODY####5The conclusion to which the defence has jumped is, in
our opinion, based on an assumption that when PW49 said that he sold
a SIM card to Mohd. Afzal on 4.12.2001, this was the SIM card. In his
testimony, PW49 did not say that he sold this SIM to Mohd. Afzal on 4.12.2001,
he only said that he sold one SIM card (without identifying it) to Mohd. Afzal
on 4.12.2001. It could be any card. The witness may have sold the particular
card to Mohd. Afzal or any other person on 6.12.2001. The witness does not
stand discredited.
In the very next sentence, the High Court however observed that in the
absence of independent corroboration of the testimony of PW49, his evidence
ought not to be taken into account. Here also, just as in the case of PW44, the
High Court fell into error in discarding the evidence on an untenable ground.
It is to be noted that the handset (Ext.P84) which was used for operating
9811489429 on the date of incident, was recovered from Afzal at Srinagar. The
call records7Ext. PW36/3 would reveal that the said number was activated on
6.11.2001 itself and that even prior to 4th December, the SIM card was held by
the same person or persons who operated it after 4.12.2001. The SIM card should
have been necessarily sold to Afzal prior to 4.12.2001.
It is contended that the test identification should have been conducted
to assure credibility to the evidence of identification of Afzal by the
shopkeepers. It is also contended that the photograph of the deceased Mohammed
should have been mixed up with the other photographs in order to impart
credibility to the version of witnesses who claimed to have seen him. We find
no substance in these contentions.
It is well settled that conducting the Test Identification Parade
relates to the stage of investigation and the omission to conduct the same will
not always affect the credibility of the witness who identifies the accused in
the Court. In Malkhansingh & Ors. Vs. State of M.P. [(2003) 5 SCC 746] B.P.
Singh, J. speaking for a three Judge Bench observed thus:
"It is well settled that the substantive evidence is the evidence
of identification in Court and the test identification parade provides
corroboration to the identification of the witness in Court, if required.
However, what weight must be attached to the evidence of identification in
Court, which is not preceded by a test identification parade, is a matter for
the Courts of fact to examine. In the instant case, the Courts below have
concurrently found the evidence of the prosecutrix to be reliable####BODY####5"
The earlier observation at paragraph 10 is also important: "It is no doubt
true that much evidentiary value cannot be attached to the identification of
the accused in court where identifying witness is a total stranger who had just
a fleeting glimpse of the person identified or who had no particular reason to
remember the person concerned, if the identification is made for the first time
in Court."
In the present case, the accused persons themselves led the witnesses to
the concerned shops and the places and pointed out the witnesses. Therefore,
the question of holding TIP thereafter does not arise. The evidence of the
prosecution witnesses who could identify the two accused persons can be safely
relied upon for more than one reason. Firstly, the time lag between the date of
first and next meeting was not much, it was just a few days or at the most two
weeks. Secondly, there was scope for sufficient interaction so that the
identity of the accused could be retained in their memory. It was not a case of
mere 'fleeting glimpse'. For the same reasons, they could identify Mohammed by
photograph which was quite clear, though. If the step was taken by the I.O. to
have the test identification of photographs of dead bodies, it would have given
better assurance of the reliability of identification. However, the failure to
do so cannot be a ground to eschew the testimony of the witnesses whose
evidence was concurrently accepted by the trial and the appellate Court. It is
not the case of the appellant or any of the accused that the identification by
photographs is not permissible under law.
(viii) Laptop
The recovery of 'laptop' from the truck in which Afzal and Shaukat
travelled on being pointed out by them is a highly incriminating
circumstance against them. It is established from the evidence that the said
laptop was used for the preparation of I.Cards and the I.Cards found at the
spot on the dead bodies and the MHA sticker found on the car were those
produced from the same laptop. It admits of no doubt that the laptop, which
must have been with the deceased terrorist Mohammed and others came into the
custody of Afzal (and Shaukat) soon after the incident on 13th December and
such possession has not been accounted for.
Now let us delve into further details, excluding from consideration the
confessional statements, according to which the laptop was given to Afzal and
Shaukat by Mohammed to be handed over to Ghazibaba.
PW617Dy. S.P., Srinagar speaks to the recovery of the laptop in a
briefcase with attachments from the truck pursuant to the disclosure made by
Afzal and Shaukat when the truck was intercepted at Srinagar. Ext.PW61/4 is the
seizure memo. PW627the Head Constable, corroborates what PW61 stated. PWs 64
& 65, who are the Sub-Inspectors of Special Cell, speak to the fact that
the laptop along with the accessories was handed over to them as the property
recovered by PW61. The laptop is Ext.P83. The laptop and other articles seized
at Srinagar were deposited in the malkhana of the police station in sealed
condition as per PW66. Then it was the job of PW807ACP, who took over
investigation on 19th December, to have the laptop examined by experts. The
experts, namely, PW727a computer engineer and PW737Assistant Government
Examiner of Questioned Documents, Bureau of Police Research, Hyderabad
submitted their reports which are Exts.PW72/1 and PW73/1. PW79, who was
associated with PW73, was also examined by the prosecution. The laptop
contained files relating to identity cards recovered from the deceased
terrorists wherein the address was mentioned as Christian Colony or Gandhi
Vihar. PW72 testified that he took printouts from the laptop which are
Exts.PW59/1 to PW59/7 and PW72/2 to PW72/13 and these documents were compared
to the original identity cards and the MHA sticker (Ext.PW1/8). The forensic
expert7PW59 submitted a report according to which the laptop (PW83) was in fact
used for the creation of I.Cards and the MHA sticker found at the spot. The
analysis and conclusions reached by PWs73 & 79 match with those of PW72. Thus,
two different sets of experts have come to the same conclusion about the
contents of the laptop. PW72 gave a detailed account of various softwares that
were found installed in the laptop and he gave a chronological account. It was
found that from November 2001 onwards, certain files were copied on to the
system. The system was used for crating, editing and viewing .tmp files (most
of which are identity cards) and viewing files stored in geo microchip. Editing
of various identity cards took place close to the date of occurrence. Some
records were edited as late as 12th December. The summary of important
documents found on the laptop contains identity cards which were similar to
those recovered from the deceased terrorists, ASF video files containing clippings
of political leaders with Parliament in background shot from TV news channels
and another file containing scanned images of front and rear view of I. Card
and a .tmp file containing design of MHA sticker. The report also reveals that
the game 'wolf pack' (sun) had registration details on the laptop which showed
the user name as 'Ashiq'7a name which was found in one of the identity cards
shown to PW20 at the time of purchase of the car and to the landlord of the
Christian Colony Hostel. The documents found in the laptop were the identity
cards in the name of Ashiq Hussain Khan similar to Ext.4/3, the front side
scanned image of Cybertech Computer Hardware Solution identity card in the name
of Ashiq Hussain Khan7Similar to the one found at the spot of occurrence, the
identity cards of Xansa Websity of Riyad Ahmad which contains the address of
Gandhi Vihar and the phone number of Afzal, the identity card of Cybertech
Computer Education of Ashif Mustafa, two identity cards of Xansa Websity of
Neeraj Bakshi and Anil Kumar which were similar to the identity cards found at
the spot, two identity cards of Xansa Websity with the name Sunil Verma and
Raju Lal which were similar to the cards found at the spot, designed sticker of
Ministry of Home Affairs found and the relative file containing the same text
as was found on the sticker.
All these documents were found created and last updated between 1st
December and 12th December, one of them was on 21st November, 2001. The
documents referred to above establish that various identity cards which were
similar to those recovered at the scene of offence were found in the laptop.
The I. Cards that were not used were also detected. Documents found at
the spot ('Q' series) were sent for forensic examination in order to report the
results of comparison of these documents with those found inside the laptop.
Besides, the sample originals of the MHA sticker and the sample identity cards
of Xansa Websity ('S' series) were sent for comparison and report. The analysis
was done by PW597Senior Scientific Officer, CFSL. He reported that the MHA
sticker image and the images of identity cards found in the laptop match with
those found at the spot in general size, design and arrangement of characters.
As regards 'S' series (genuine sample documents), the finding was that they
differed with the identity cards etc., found at the spot. It may be stated that
the franchisees of Xansa Websity were examined as PWs 25 and 50 and they
produced the genuine samples and also testified to the fake names and addresses
printed on the identity cards. We agree with the High Court that the testimony
of PWs 59, 72, 73 & 79 establish beyond doubt that fake documents were
created from the laptop which was evidently in the possession of the deceased
terrorists and eventually recovered from Afzal/Shaukat in Srinagar. We find
that the evidence of these witnesses could not in any way be shattered in the
cross examination. There was no cross examination of the witness7 PW59 by
Afzal. The limited cross examination on behalf of Shaukat did not yield
anything favourable to the accused. As regards PW72, most of the cross
examination was in the nature of hypothetical questions. Though there was no
suggestion of any tampering to this witness, the witness stated that there was
no evidence of replacement of the hard disk upon a perusal of the reg file.
There was no suggestion to PW72 that the documents (printouts) taken from the
laptop were not the real ones. Two different experts recorded same conclusions
without knowing the report of each other.
One point of criticism levelled by the defence counsel is that in spite
of the fact that the laptop was deposited in the malkhana on 16.1.2002, (after
it was received back from PW72), the analysis by PW73 revealed that two of the
files were last written on 21.1.2001 and one file was last accessed and last
written on the same day. In this connection, it is to be noted that according
to the case diary, the laptop was accessed by the independent agencies at the
malkhana on 21.1.2002. It is clarified by the learned counsel for the State and
as found by the High Court, the said files being self-generating and self-
written, they reflected the date of writing as 21.1.2002, as the laptop would
have been switched on by the investigating agencies on that date. While cross
examining PW73, a question was put as to how a file could be written without it
being accessed. The witness answered that the file cannot be written without
being accessed by copying it on a different storage media. The learned counsel
for the State is justified in his comment that the said answer was not a
response pertaining to system files, which are self-generating and
self-written. There was no suggestion to any witness that the date or time
setting has been modified in the instant case so as to facilitate tampering. A
mountain out of mole hill is sought to be made out by reason of the observation
of PW73 that some of the files were last written after the date of seizure and
the answer given by PW73 with reference to a general, hypothetical question.
The testimony of DW87computer engineer, who was examined on behalf of
the accused Gilani, does not in any way substantiate the point of criticism
about the possible tampering of laptop or nor does it make a dent on the
findings of the experts examined by the prosecution. The testimony of this
witness was not with reference to any of the files on which certain doubts were
raised. His testimony is, by and large, on hypothetical aspects and does not
relate to the authenticity of the contents of laptop as reported by the other
experts.
In the light of foregoing discussion, we hold that the laptop found in
the custody of the appellants and the results of analysis thereof would amply
demonstrate that the laptop was the one used by the deceased terrorists
contemporaneous to the date of incident and it should have passed hands on the
day of the incident or the previous day. The accused carrying the same with him
soon after the incident furnishes cogent evidence pointing towards his involvement.
The circumstances detailed above clearly establish that the appellant
Afzal was associated with the deceased terrorists in almost every act done by
them in order to achieve the objective of attacking the Parliament House. He
established close contacts with the deceased terrorists, more especially,
Mohammed. Short of participating in the actual attack, he did everything
to set in motion the diabolic mission. As is the case with most of the
conspiracies, there is and could be no direct evidence of the agreement
amounting to criminal conspiracy. However, the circumstances cumulatively
considered and weighed, would unerringly point to the collaboration of the
accused Afzal with the slain 'Fidayeen' terrorists. The circumstances, if
considered together, as it ought to be, establish beyond reasonable doubt that
Afzal was a party to the conspiracy and had played an active part in various
acts done in furtherance of the conspiracy. These circumstances cannot be
viewed in isolation and by no standards of common sense, be regarded as
innocuous acts. His conduct and actions7antecedent, contemporaneous and
subsequent7all point to his guilt and are only consistent with his involvement
in the conspiracy. Viewed from another angle, the Court can draw a presumption
under Section 114 of Evidence Act having regard to the natural course of events
and human conduct that the appellant Afzal had nexus with the conspirators who
were killed and all of them together hatched the conspiracy to attack the
Parliament House and in that process to use explosives and other dangerous
means. We are, therefore, of the view that there is sufficient and satisfactory
circumstantial evidence to establish that Afzal was a partner in this conspired
crime of enormous gravity.
(ix) Punishment:
Identification of the appropriate provisions of POTA and IPC under which
the accused Afzal becomes liable for punishment is the next important task
before the Court.
In dealing with this aspect, the first question that arises for
consideration is whether the appellant Afzal can be convicted under Section
120B of IPC read with Section 3(1) of POTA and be punished under Section 3(2)
for the offence of criminal conspiracy to commit a 'terrorist act' or whether
he is liable to be punished only under sub-Section(3) of Section 3 of POTA.
Mr. Sushil Kumar, learned senior counsel appearing for the appellant
Afzal has contended, quite contrary to the stand taken by the other two senior
counsel, that no offence under POTA is made out in the instant case and
therefore POTA offences were not included in the beginning. He submits that the
actions of the deceased terrorists and the alleged conspirators can all be
brought within the scope of Section 121 and 121A of IPC. As the unauthorized
interception of communications and inadmissible joint disclosures were found to
be insufficient to make out the offence under Section 121, the police thought
of adding POTA after 19th December, so that the confession to the police
officer could be made the basis of conviction. We find it difficult to
appreciate this argument. The propriety by or otherwise of the action of the
investigating agency in adding POTA at a later stage is one thing; whether the
offence under POTA is made out, in addition to the offences under IPC, is a
distinct point, one shall not be mixed up with the other. As far as the non-
applicability of Section 3 of POTA is concerned, the learned senior counsel
appearing for Afzal has not given any particular reason as to why the acts done
by the deceased persons did not amount to terrorist acts within the meaning of
Section 3(1) of POTA. Whether the appellant has committed the terrorist act
himself or not is a different matter but to say that POTA as a whole does not
govern the situation is to take an extreme stand unsupported by reasoning.
We shall now consider the contentions of Mr. Shanti Bhushan and Mr. Ram
Jethmalani that the conspiracy to commit a terrorist act is punishable only
under sub-Section (3) of Section 3 of POTA and Section 120B IPC will have no
application in relation to a terrorist act as defined by Section 3(1) of POTA.
Though this contention raised by the learned counsel does not really arise for
determination in the cases of the accused whom they represent in view of the
conclusions reached by us as regards their culpability, we feel that the
correctness of this contention has to be tested in so far as Afzal is
concerned.
The stand taken by Mr. Gopal Subramanium is that on the commission of
overt criminal acts by the terrorists pursuant to the conspiracy hatched by
them and the accused, even the conspirators will be liable under Section
3(1)/3(2) of POTA. It is his contention that where overt acts take place or the
object of the conspiracy is achieved, then all the conspirators are liable for
the acts of each other and with the aid of Section 120B read with Section 3(2),
all
the conspirators are punishable under Section 3(2). The liability of
mere conspirators is coequal to the liability of the active conspirators
according to him. Alternatively, it is contended that on account of the
perpetration of criminal acts by the deceased terrorists pursuant to
conspiracy, the appellant is liable to be punished under Section 120B of IPC
read with Section 3(1) of POTA and the punishment applicable is the one
prescribed under sub-Section (2) of Section 3 of POTA. According to the learned
counsel, sub-Section (3) of Section 3 does not come into play in the instant
case because of the overt acts that have taken place in execution of the
conspiratorial design.
As far as the first contention of Mr. Gopal Subramanium is concerned, we
have already rejected his argument that on the principle of 'theory of agency',
the conspirators will be liable for the substantive offences committed pursuant
to the conspiracy. When once the application of the theory of agency is
negatived, there is no scope to hold that the appellant, in spite of not having
done any act or thing by using the weapons and substances set out in sub-
Section(1)(a), he, as a conspirator, can be brought within the sweep and ambit
of sub-Sections (1) & (2). The wording of clause (a) of Section 3(1) is
clear that it applies to those who do any acts or things by using explosive
substances etc., with the intention referred to in clause (a), but not to the
conspirators who remained in the background.
We must now deal with the alternative contention of Mr. Gopal
Subramanium that Section 120B of IPC can be combined with Sections 3(1) and
3(2) of POTA.
The contention of Mr. Shanti Bhushan and Mr. Ram Jethmalani is straight
and simple. POTA is a special law dealing with terrorist activities and
providing for punishment therefor. Conspiring to commit a terrorist act, among
other things, is specifically brought within the fold of sub-Section (3) and is
clearly covered by that sub-Section. Therefore, the learned counsel submit that
the punishment as prescribed by sub-Section (3) alone could be applied even if
the appellant is held guilty of the offence of conspiring to do a terrorist act
with others. The question whether the conspiracy resulted in the commission of
offences in order to achieve the objective of the conspirators is immaterial
according to the concerned counsel. As a corollary to this argument, it is
contended that Section 120B IPC, which is contained in the general law of crimes,
cannot be brought into the picture so as to attract higher punishment
especially in view of Section 56 of POTA, which gives overriding effect to the
provisions of POTA. The learned counsel therefore submits that the maximum
punishment that can be imposed is life imprisonment as per Section 3(3) of
POTA.
The relevant part of Section 120B reads as follows: "120B.
Punishment of criminal conspiracy.7(1) Whoever is a party to a criminal
conspiracy to commit an offence punishable with death, (imprisonment for life)
or rigorous imprisonment for a term of two years or upwards, shall, where no
express provision is made in this Code for the punishment of such a conspiracy,
be punished in the same manner as if he had abetted such offence.
Thus a party to criminal conspiracy shall be punished in the same manner
as if he had abetted the relevant offence i.e. an offence punishable with
death, imprisonment for life etc. Mr. Gopal Subramanium then referred to the
definition of 'offence' in Section 40 of IPC which in the context of Chapter VA
(of which Sections 120A & 120B form part) denotes a thing punishable under
the Code or under any special or local law. A special law is defined to mean a
law applicable to a particular subject. POTA is one such law. Then he had taken
us through Section 2(1)(i) of POTA. Sections 2(n) and 2(y) of Cr.P.C. that
submit that Section 120B embraces within its fold the offences under any
special law and that Section 120B can be related to the offence under Section
3(1) of POTA. According to the learned counsel, Section 120B should be applied
wholly or in part pursuant to the conspiracy, if the criminal acts in the
nature of terrorist acts take place. According to the learned counsel, the
conspiracy contemplated by Section 3(3) of POTA should be confined only to
situations where no overt acts in the direction of commission of planned
offence takes place.
The final question is about the sentence7whether the capital
punishment awarded by the trial Court and the High Court is justified?
The endeavor of the learned counsel for the State to invoke the punishment
under Section 3(2) of POTA through the media of Section 120B is in our opinion
a futile exercise. The argument of the learned counsel proceeds on the basis
that the punishment provided in the abetment provisions of IPC, that is to say,
Section 109, will be attracted. This argument is built up on the basis of the
phraseology of the concluding clause of Section 120B which says7"be
punished in the same manner as if he had abetted such offence". Let us
take it that the word 'offence' in Section 120B includes the offence under
special law, namely POTA. Then, if the offence under Section 3(1) of the POTA
is abetted, what is the punishment that is attracted is the point to be
considered. Undoubtedly, it is Section 3(3) of POTA which says: "whoever
'conspires'####BODY####5or####BODY####5 'abets' a terrorist act shall be
punishable with imprisonment which shall not be less than five years but which
may extend to imprisonment for life". Taking resort to the abetment
provisions in the IPC in order to locate the punishment for conspiracy to
commit terrorist act would be wholly inappropriate when the abetment of the
terrorist act is made punishable under Section 3(3) of POTA itself which
prescribes the minimum and maximum punishment. In other words, invocation of
Section 109 IPC is wholly unwarranted when POTA itself prescribes the
punishment for conspiracy as well as abetment in a single sub- section.
Therefore, even if Section 120B is applied, it does not make any different as
regards the quantum of punishment. In either case i.e. whether Section 120B IPC
is applied or Section 3(3) of POTA is applied, the maximum sentence is life
imprisonment but not death sentence. This is apart from the question whether
Section 120B IPC can at all be projected into Section 3 of POTA when there is
specific provision in the very same Section for the offence of conspiring to
commit a terrorist act and other allied offences. The contention that it would
not have been the intention of the Parliament to visit conspiracies involving
terrorist acts with less severe punishment than what could be inflicted under
Section 120B does not appeal to us. The other argument addressed that having
regard to the setting and associated words such as 'advices', 'advocates' etc.,
the conspiracies of lesser magnitude, that is to say, those which were not put
into action will only be covered by sub- Section (3), does not also appeal to
us. There is no set pattern in which the various expressions are used in
sub-Section (3) of Section 3. More serious acts as well as less serious acts
involving various degrees of criminality related to terrorist acts are all
encompassed in Section 3(3). They need not be uniformity in the matter of
punishment in respect of all these prohibited acts. The range of punishment
varies from five years to life imprisonment and depending upon the gravity of
the offence, appropriate punishment could be given. We are also not impressed
by the finding of the High Court that "by reason of the words 'or thing'
occurring in Section 3(1) (as a part of the clause 'does any act or thing' by
using bombs, dynamite or other explosive substances or firearms etc"), the
definition of a terrorist act need not be restricted to a physical act of using
explosives etc. The High Court observed that the actions of Afzal in procuring
explosives and chemicals and "participating in the preparation of
explosives would be action amounting to doing of a thing using
explosives", cannot be supported on any principle of interpretation.
Moreover, it rests on a finding that the accused Afzal and Shaukat participated
in the preparation of explosives for which there is no evidentiary support.
Even their confession (which is now eschewed from consideration) does not say that.
The net result of the above discussion is that the conspiracy to commit
terrorist acts attracts punishment under sub-Section (3) of Section 3. The
accused Afzal who is found to be a party to the conspiracy is therefore liable
to be punished under that provision. Having regard to the nature, potential and
magnitude of the conspiracy with all the attendant consequences and the
disastrous events that followed, the maximum sentence of life imprisonment is
the appropriate punishment to be given to Mohd. Afzal under Section 3(3) of
POTA for conspiring to commit the terrorist act. Accordingly, we convict and
sentence him.
The conviction under Section 3(2) of POTA is set aside. The conviction
under Section 3(5) of POTA is also set aside because there is no evidence that
he is a member of a terrorist gang or a terrorist organization, once the
confessional statement is excluded. Incidentally, we may mention that even
going by confessional statement, it is doubtful whether the membership
of a terrorist gang or organization is established.
We shall then consider whether the conviction of Afzal under Section
120B read with Section 302 IPC is justified. The High Court upheld the
conviction and gave death sentence to the two appellants under this Section. We
are of the view that the conviction and sentence on this count is in accordance
with law. The conspiracy has many dimensions here. It is implicit in the
conspiracy to attack the Parliament that it extends to all the offensive acts
intimately associated with that illegal objective. Indulgence in terrorist
acts, killing and injuring persons who are most likely to resist the attackers,
using explosive devices, firearms and other dangerous things in the course of
attack, 'waging war' against the Government of the country are all various
manifestations of the conspiracy hatched by the deceased terrorists in
combination with the appellant Afzal. The mere fact that no particular person
is the target of attack of the conspirators, does not make any difference in
regard to the applicability of Section 300 IPC. The intention to cause death or
the intention of causing bodily injury as would in all probability cause death
is writ large in the conspiracy directed towards the indiscriminate attack on
the Parliament of the nation when it is in session. The opening clause of
Section 300 says that "except in the cases hereinafter excepted, culpable
homicide is murder, if the act by which the death is caused is done with the
intention of causing death". Clause fourthly says: "if the person committing
the act knows that it is so imminently dangerous that it must, in all
probability, cause death or such bodily injury as is likely to cause death, and
commits such act without any excuse for incurring the risk of causing death or
such injury as aforesaid" (vide clause fourthly). These clauses squarely
apply to the case on hand. Illustration (d) to Section 300 is instructive. It
reads thus:
(d) A without any excuse fires a loaded cannon into a crowd of persons
and kills one of them. A is guilty of murder, although he may not have had a
premeditated design to kill any particular individual.
The conspiracy to commit the offence of murder in the course of
execution of conspiracy is well within the scope of conspiracy to which the
accused Afzal was a party. Therefore, he is liable to be punished under Section
120B read with Section 302 IPC. The punishment applicable is the one prescribed
under Section 109 IPC in view of the phraseology of Section 120B7"be
punished in the same manner as if he had abetted such offence". Section
109 IPC lays down that "if the act abetted is committed in consequence of
the abetment, and no express provision is made by this Code for the punishment
of such abetment, a person abetting the offence shall be punished with the
punishment provided for the offence." Thus the conspirator, even though he
may not have indulged in the actual criminal operations to execute the
conspiracy, becomes liable for the punishment prescribed under Section 302 IPC.
Either death sentence or imprisonment for life is the punishment prescribed
under Section 302 IPC.
In the instant case, there can be no doubt that the most appropriate
punishment is death sentence. That is what has been awarded by the trial Court
and the High Court. The present case, which has no parallel in the history of
Indian Republic, presents us in crystal clear terms, a spectacle of rarest of
rare cases. The very idea of attacking and overpowering a sovereign democratic
institution by using powerful arms and explosives and imperiling the safety of
a multitude of peoples' representatives, constitutional functionaries and
officials of Government of India and engaging into a combat with security
forces is a terrorist act of gravest severity. It is a classic example of
rarest of rare cases.
The gravity of the crime conceived by the conspirators with the
potential of causing enormous casualties and dislocating the functioning of the
Government as well as disrupting normal life of the people of India is some
thing which cannot be described in words. The incident, which resulted in heavy
casualties, had shaken the entire nation and the collective conscience of the
society will only be satisfied if the capital punishment is awarded to the
offender. The challenge to the unity, integrity and sovereignty of India by
these acts of terrorists and conspirators, can only be compensated by giving
the maximum punishment to the person who is proved to be the conspirator in
this treacherous act. The appellant, who is a surrendered militant and
who was bent upon repeating the acts of treason against the nation, is a menace
to the society and his life should become extinct. Accordingly, we uphold the
death sentence.
Before we go to the next provision under which the appellant is liable
to be convicted, we shall deal with the contention of Mr. Shanti Bhushan,
appearing for the appellant Shaukat, which becomes relevant in the case of
Afzal. His arguments run as follows:
The acts committed by the deceased terrorists causing death of several
security personnel by using firearms and explosives in order to gain entry into
the Parliament House fall within the definition of 'terrorist act' punishable
under Section 3(2) of POTA. If POTA had not been there, the offence committed
by them would have been the offence of murder punishable under Section 120B
read with Section 302 IPC. In view of the overriding provision contained in
Section 56 of POTA, the conspiracy to commit terrorist act is punishable only
under Section 3(3) of POTA. Merely because the same criminal acts also fall
within the definition of murder, the accused cannot be convicted of conspiracy
to commit murder under Section 120B read with Section 302 IPC in addition to
Section 3(3) of POTA. The accused cannot be punished for the offence of
conspiracy to cause death when he is liable to be punished for the same act of
causing death under the General Penal Law. It is only the punishment provided
by the appropriate provision in the special law that can be imposed on the
conspirator. That provision being Section 3(3) and it provides for the maximum
sentence of life imprisonment, death sentence cannot be given.
The learned counsel, apart from placing reliance on Section 56 of POTA,
has also drawn our attention to Section 26 of General Clauses Act and Section
71 of IPC. His contention, though plausible it is, has no legal basis. We do
not think that there is anything in Section 56 of POTA which supports his
contention. That provision only ensures that the conspiracy to commit the
terrorist act shall be punishable under POTA. As the appellant is being
punished under that Section, irrespective of the liability to be punished under
the other laws, Section 56 ceases to play its role. Then, we shall turn to
Section 26 of the General Clauses Act, which lays down: Where an act or omission
constitutes an offence under two or more enactments, then the offender shall be
liable to be prosecuted and punished under either or any of those enactments,
but shall not be liable to be punished twice for the same offence.
It becomes at once clear that the emphasis is on the words 'same
offence'. It is now well settled that where there are two distinct offences
made up of different ingredients, the bar under Section 26 of the General
Clauses Act or for that matter, the embargo under Article 20 of the
Constitution, has no application, though the offences may have some overlapping
features. The crucial requirement of either Article 20 of the Constitution or
Section 26 of the General Clauses Act is that the offences are the same or
identical in all respects. It was clarified in State of Bihar Vs. Murad Ali
Khan [(1988) 4 SCC 655].
"Though Section 26 in its opening words refers to 'the act or
omission constituting an offence under two or more enactments', the emphasis is
not on the facts alleged in the two complaints but rather on the ingredients
which constitute the two offences with which a person is charged. This is made
clear by the concluding portion of the section which refers to 'shall not be
liable to be punished twice for the same offence'. If the offences are not the
same but are distinct, the ban imposed by this provision also cannot be
invoked####BODY####5 The same set of facts, in conceivable cases, can
constitute offences under two different laws. An act or an omission can amount
to and constitute an offence under the IPC and at the same time constitute an
offence under any other law. The same set of facts, in conceivable cases, can
constitute offences under two different laws. An act or an omission can amount
to and constitute an offence under the IPC and at the same time constitute an
offence under any other law."
We accept the argument of the learned counsel for the State Mr. Gopal
Subramanium that offences under Section 302 IPC, Section 3(2) and Section 3(3)
of POTA are all distinct offences and a person can be charged, tried, convicted
and punished for each of them severally. The analysis of these provisions show
that the ingredients of these offences are substantially different and that an
offence falling within the ambit of Section 3(1) may not be squarely covered by
the offence under Section 300 IPC. The same set of facts may constitute
different offences. The case of State of M.P. Vs. Veereshwar Rao Agnihotri
[1957 SCR 868] is illustrative of this principle. In that case, it was held that
the offence of criminal misconduct punishable under Section 5(2) of the
Prevention of Corruption Act is not identical in essence, import and content
with an offence under Section 409 IPC. The bar to the punishment of the
offender twice over for the same offence would arise only where the ingredients
of both the offences are the same.
Section 71 of IPC does not in any way advance the contention of the
appellant's counsel. The relevant part of Section 71 IPC reads: Where anything
is an offence falling within two or more separate definitions of any law in
force for the time being by which offences are defined or punished,
####BODY####5 ####BODY####5 ####BODY####5 ####BODY####5 the offender shall not
be punished with a more severe punishment than the court which tries him could
award for any one of such offences.
The argument based on Section 71 IPC is no different from the argument
advanced with reference to Section 26 of the General Clauses Act. For the same
reasons, we reject this argument. The case of Zaverbhai Vs. State of Bombay
[AIR 1954 SC 752] does not lay down any different principle. In fact that case
is concerned with question of repugnancy of the State and Central laws.
The next question we have to answer is whether the conviction of the
appellant Mohd. Afzal under Sections 121 and 121A can be sustained. This raises
the question whether the acts of the deceased terrorists amount to waging or
abetting or attempting to wage war punishable under Section 121 IPC and Mohd.
Afzal, being a party to conspiracy to attack the Parliament House, is
punishable either under Section 121 or under Section 121A or both. To answer
this question, we have to explore the concept and nuances of the expression
'waging war' employed in Section 121.
(x) Waging War
In interpreting the expression 'waging war', the Indian cases of pre-
independence days, though few they are, by and large cited with approval the
18th and 19th century English authorities. The term 'wages war' was considered
to be a substitute for 'levying war' in the English Statute of High Treason of
1351 i.e Statute 25, Edward III, c.2. In the famous book of Sir James F.
Stephen 6 "A History of the Criminal Law of England" (1883
publication), it was noted that the principal heads of treason as ascertained
by that Statute were: (1) 'imagining'? the King's death" (2) levying war
and (3) adhering to the King's enemies.
The speech of Lord Mansfield, CJ addressed to the Jury in Lord George
Gordon's case (1781) is often quoted to unfold the meaning of the expression
'levying war against the King'. To quote the words of Mansfield, C.J.:
"There are two kinds of levying war: one against the person of the King:
to imprison, to dethrone, or to kill him; or to make him change measures, or
remove counsellors : the other, which is said to be levied against the majesty
of the King or, in other words, against him in his regal capacity; as when a
multitude rise and assemble to attain by force and violence any object of a
general public nature; that is levying war against the majesty of the King; and
most reasonably so held, because it tends to dissolve all the bonds of society,
to destroy property, and to overturn Government ; and by force of arms, to
restrain the King from reigning, according to law".
"No amount of violence, however great, and with whatever
circumstances of a warlike kind it may be attended, will make an attack
by one subject on another high treason. On the other hand, any amount of
violence, however insignificant, directed against the King will be high
treason, and as soon as violence has any political objects, it is impossible to
say that it is not directed against the king, in the sense of being armed
opposition to the lawful exercise of his power".
The learned Chief Justice then referred to the observations of Lord
Holt, C. J. in a case reported in Holt's reports (1688-1700) at 681-682:
"Holt L. C.J. in Sir John Friend's case says, 'if persons do assemble
themselves and act with force in opposition to some law which they think
inconvenient, and hope thereby to get it repealed, this is a levying war and
treason". "I tell you the joint opinion of us all, that, if this
multitude assembled with intent, by acts or force and violence, to compel the
legislature to repeal a law, it is high treason"####BODY####5####BODY####5..The
question always is, whether the intent is, by force and violence, to attain an
object of a general and public nature, by any instruments; or by dint of their
numbers".
In 1820 Lord President Hope in his summing up speech to the jury in Rex
Vs. Andrew Hardie, (1820, 1 State Trials N.S., 610) explained the distinction
between levying a war and committing a riot in the following words:
"Gentlemen, it may be useful to say a few words on the distinction between
levying war against the King and committing a riot. The distinction seems to
consist in this, although they may often run very nearly into each other. Where
the rising or tumult is merely to accomplish some private purpose, interesting
only to those engaged in it, and not resisting or calling in question the
King's authority or prerogative then the tumult, however numerous or outrageous
the mob may be, is held only to be a riot. For example, suppose a mob to rise,
and even by force of arms to break into a particular prison and rescue certain
persons therein confined, or to oblige the Magistrates to set them at liberty
or to lower the price of provisions in a certain market, or to tear down
certain enclosures, which they conceive to encroach on the town's commons. All
such acts, though severely punishable, and though they may be resisted by
force, do not amount to treason. Nothing is pointed against either the person
or authority of the King".
"But, gentlemen, wherever the rising or insurrection has for its
object a general purpose, not confined to the peculiar views and interests of
the persons concerned in it, but common to the whole community, and striking
directly the King's authority or that of Parliament, then it assumes the
character of treason. For example, if mobs were to rise in different parts of
the country to throw open all enclosures and to resist the execution of the law
regarding enclosures wheresoever attempted, to pull down all prisons or Courts
of justice, to resist all revenue officers in the collecting of all or any of
the taxes; in short, all risings to accomplish a general purpose, or to hinder
a general measure, which by law can only be authorized or prohibited by
authority of the King or Parliament, amount to levying of war against the King
and have always been tried and punished as treason. It is, therefore, not the
numbers concerned, nor the force employed by the people rising in arms, but the
object which they have in view that determines the character of the crime, and
will make it either riot or treason, according as that object is of a public
and general, or private and local nature".
Then in 1839, Tindal, C. J. while summing up the Jury in the trial of
John Frost in the year 1839 [All ER Reprint 1835-1842 P.106 at P.117] stated
that it was "essential to the making out of the charge of high treason by
levying war, there must be an insurrection, there must be force accompanying
that
insurrection; and it must be for the accomplishment of an object of a
general nature".
The following statement of law by Sir Michael Foster is instructive:
"There is a difference between those insurrections which have carried the
appearance of an army formed under leaders, and provided with military weapons,
and with drums, colours etc., and those other disorderly tumultous assemblies
which have been drawn together and conducted to purposes manifestly unlawful,
but without any of the ordinary shew and apparatus of war before
mentioned." "I do not think any great stress can be laid on that distinction.
It is true, that in case of levying war the indictments generally charge, that
the defendants were armed and arrayed in a warlike manner; and, where the case
would admit of it, the other circumstances of swords, guns, drums, colours,
etc., have been added. But I think the merits of the case have never turned
singly on any of these circumstances".
We find copious reference to these English authorities in the Judgments
of various High Courts which we will be referring to a little later and in the
'Law of Crimes' authored by Ratanlal and Dhirajlal (25th Edition). In fact,
they were referred to in extenso by this Court in Nazir Khan Vs. State of Delhi
[(2003) 8 SCC page 461].
Whether this exposition of law on the subject of levying war continues
to be relevant in the present day and in the context of great socio-political
developments that have taken place is a moot point. Our comments may be found a
little later.
Coming to the Indian decisions, the earliest case in which the
conviction under section 121 and 121A IPC was sustained is the decision of a
Division Bench of Madras High Court in AIR 1922 Mad. 126. The accused was seen
in a crowd of people which attacked the police and military forces with deadly
weapons, when the forces under the supervision of the District Magistrate
started searching for war-knives. The mob retreated after the police opened
fire and the accused who was arrested told the mob to disperse. The accused
earlier exhorted the people who attended a meeting to subvert the British Raj and
establish the Khilafat Govt. and to destroy the Govt. properties. The High
Court agreeing with the District Judge found him guilty under section 121, IPC
while observing thus :
"We have then that the accused was taking part in an organized
armed attack on the constituted authorities, that attack having for its object,
in the words of his own speech, the subversion of British Raj and the
establishment of another Government. That being so, we concur without
hesitation in the lower Court's conclusion that the accused was guilty of the
offence of waging war against the King."
The next case which is an oft-quoted authority is the decision of a
special Bench of Rangoon High Court in AIR 1931 Rang 235, Page CJ speaking for
the special Bench prefaced his discussion with the statement that the words
"waging war in Section 121 are synonymous with 'levying war' in the
Statute 25, Edward 3, clause 2 which offence is declared to be treason. After
referring to the observations of Mansfield, CJ, Lord President Hope, Tindal, CJ
and the commentaries of Sir Michael Foster, the High Court concluded thus :
"The natural and reasonable inference to be drawn from the conduct and
acts of insurgence was that they intended to overcome and destroy the forces of
the Crown at all events and regardless of any pretended grievance in connection
with capitation tax." The learned Judges referred to the incidents that
took place in the course of preparing for an encounter with the forces of the
Crown and observed that they were consistent only with an intention on the part
of the insurgents to wage war against the King Emperor. The raiding of
headmen's houses for guns and ammunition, the looting of stores, the drilling
of the rank and file, the supply of dahs and spears and uniforms to the combatants,
the enforced tattooing of certain reluctant villagers "all point to an
intention to wage war and nothing else".
It was then observed that :
"a deliberate and organized attack upon the Crown forces such as
that which took place on 7th January clearly would amount to a waging of
war if the object of the insurgents was by armed force and violence to overcome
the servants of the Crown and thereby to prevent the general collection of the
capitation tax".
The incident was described as a battle which was the result of a
rebellion. Those who were parties to it were held guilty of waging war within
Section 121 IPC.
In the case of Maganlal Radhakrishan [AIR 1946 Nagpur 173] there was an
elaborate discussion on the scope of Section 121 with reference to the old
English cases on the subject of 'levying-war' and high treason. Certain
decisions of Indian Courts e.g., AIR 1931 Rangoon 235 were also referred to and
the following principles were culled out :
(i) No specific number of persons is necessary to constitute an offence
under S.121, Penal Code.
(ii) The number concerned and the manner in which theyare equipped or
armed is not material.
(iii) The true criterion is quo animo did the gathering assemble?
(iv) The object of the gathering must be to attain by forceand violence
an object of a general public nature, thereby striking directly against the
King's authority.
(v) There is no distinction between principal and accessory and all who
take part in the unlawful act incur the same guilt."
The accused in that case was found to have connections with Hindustan
Red Army and to have designs for the elimination of the existing Government.
Arms and explosives were found concealed in his house. He was found involved in
the destruction of Police Station and shooting of a police constable. The
learned Judges felt that the raid on the Maudha Station House was part of the
design 'to attain by force and violence an object of a general public
nature"7the test laid down by Mansfield, CJ. The Nagpur High Court
concluded that all this was a pre-determined plan for the overthrow of
Government at a time when it was involved in a world-wide conflict. The
conviction of Maganlal under section 121 was thus upheld.
The decision of a Division Bench of Patna High Court in AIR 1951 Patna
60 (Mir Hasan Khan vs. the State) is illustrative of what acts do not
constitute waging of war. That was a case in which there was a mutiny among
certain sections of the Police forces on account of the indignation aroused by
the punishment given to one of their colleagues. The conviction under section
121, IPC was mainly based on the fact that the accused were among those who
took possession of the armory and also took part in the resistance which was
put up to the troops. The conviction was set aside and the following pertinent
observations were made by Shearer, J. "The expression "waging
war" means & can, I think, only mean "waging war in the manner
usual in war". In other words, in order to support a conviction on such a
charge, it is not enough to show that the persons charged have contrived to
obtain possession of an armoury & have, when called upon to surrender it,
used the rifles & ammunition so obtained against the King's troops. It must
also be shown that the seizure of the armoury was part & parcel of a
planned operation & that their intention in resisting the troops of the
King was to overwhelm & defeat these troops & then to go on & crush
any further opposition with which they might meet until either the leaders of
the movement succeeded in obtaining possession of the machinery of Govt. or
until those in possession of it yielded to the demands of their leaders".
Support was drawn from the Digest of Criminal Law by Sir James
Stephens. In the Digest, one of the meanings given to the expression to
levy-war is : "attacking in the manner usual in war the King himself or
his military forces, acting as such by his orders, in the execution of their
duty." It was concluded "it is, I think, quite impossible to say that
any of these appellants waged-war in the sense in which that expression, as it
occurs in Section 121, Penal Code, was used". "The appellants or some
of them were in possession of the armory at Gaya for several days and it is
perfectly clear that they never intended to use it as a base for further operations".
The next question is whether the dare devil and horrendous acts perpetrated by
the slain terrorists pursuant to the conspiracy, amount to waging or attempting
to wage war punishable under Section 121 IPC and whether the conspirators are liable
to be punished under Section 121 or 121A or both.
Section 121 and 121A occur in the Chapter 'Offences against the State'.
The public peace is disturbed and the normal channels of Government are
disrupted by such offences which are aimed at subverting the authority of the
Government or paralyzing the constitutional machinery. The expression 'war'
preceded by the verb 'wages' admits of many shades of meaning and defies a
definition with exactitude though it appeared to be an unambiguous phraseology
to the Indian Law Commissioners who examined the draft Penal Code in 1847. The
Law Commissioners observed:
"We conceive the term 'wages war against the Government' naturally
to import a person arraying himself in defiance of the Government in like
manner and by like means as a foreign enemy would do, and it seems to us, we
presume it did to the authors of the Code that any definition of the term so
unambiguous would be superfluous."
The expression 'Government of India' was substituted for the expression
'Queen' by the Adaptation of Laws Order of 1950. Section 121 now reads7
"Whoever wages war against the Government of India or attempts to wage
such war, or abets the waging of such war, shall be punished with death or
imprisonment for life and shall also be liable to fine".
The conspiracy to commit offences punishable under Section 121 attracts
punishment under Section 121A and the maximum sentence could be imprisonment
for life. The other limb of Section 121A is the conspiracy to overawe by means
of criminal force or the show of criminal force, the Central Government or any
State Government. The explanation to Section 121-A clarifies that it is not
necessary that any act or illegal omission should take place pursuant to the
conspiracy, in order to constitute the said offence. War, terrorism and violent
acts to overawe the established Government have many things in common. It is
not too easy to distinguish them, but one thing is certain, the concept of war
imbedded in Section 121 is not to be understood in international law sense of
inter-country war involving military operations by and between two or more
hostile countries. Section 121 is not meant to punish prisoners of war of a
belligerent nation. Apart from the legislative history of the provision and the
understanding of the expression by various High Courts during the
pre-independence days, the Illustration to Section 121 itself makes it clear
that 'war' contemplated by Section 121 is not conventional warfare between two
nations. Organizing or joining an insurrection against the Government of India
is also a form of war. 'Insurrection' as defined in dictionaries and as
commonly understood connotes a violent uprising by a group directed against the
Government in power or the civil authorities. "Rebellion, revolution and civil
war are progressive stages in the development of civil unrest the most
rudimentary form of which is 'insurrection'7vide Pan American World Air Inc.
Vs. Actna Cas & Sur Co. [505, F.R. 2d, 989 at P. 1017]. An act of
insurgency is different from belligerency. It needs to be clarified that
insurrection is only illustrative of the expression 'war' and it is seen from
the old English authorities referred to supra that it would cover situations
analogous to insurrection if they tend to undermine the authority of the Ruler
or Government.
It has been aptly said by Sir J.F. Stephen "unlawful assemblies,
riots, insurrections, rebellions, levying of war are offences which run into
each other and not capable of being marked off by perfectly definite
boundaries. All of them have in common one feature, namely, that the normal
tranquility of a
civilized society is, in each of the cases mentioned, disturbed either
by actual force or at least by the show and threat of it".
To this list has to be added 'terrorist acts' which are so conspicuous
now- a-days. Though every terrorist act does not amount to waging war, certain
terrorist acts can also constitute the offence of waging war and there is no
dichotomy between the two. Terrorist acts can manifest themselves into acts of
war. According to the learned Senior Counsel for the State, terrorist acts
prompted by an intention to strike at the sovereign authority of the
State/Government, tantamount to waging war irrespective of the number involved
or the force employed.
It is seen that the first limb of Section 3(1) of POTA7 "with
intent to threaten the unity, integrity, security or sovereignty of India or to
strike terror in the people or any section of the people does any act or thing
by using bombs, dynamite or other explosive or inflammable substances or
firearms or other lethal weapons or poisons or noxious gases or other chemicals
or by any other substances (whether biological or otherwise) of a hazardous
nature or by any other means whatsoever" and the act of waging war have
overlapping features. However, the degree of animus or intent and the magnitude
of the acts done or attempted to be done would assume some relevance in order
to consider whether the terrorist acts give rise to a state of war. Yet, the
demarcating line is by no means clear, much less transparent. It is often a
difference in degree. The distinction gets thinner if a comparison is made of
terrorist acts with the acts aimed at overawing the Government by means of
criminal force. Conspiracy to commit the latter offence is covered by Section,
121A.
It needs to be noticed that even in international law sphere, there is
no standard definition of war. Prof. L.Oppenheim in his well-known treatise on
International Law has given a definition marked by brevity and choice of words.
The learned author said: "war is a contention between two or more States
through their armed forces, for the purpose of overpowering each other and
imposing such conditions of peace as the victor pleases". Yoram
Dinstein7an expert in international law field analyzed the said definition in
the following words:
"There are four major constituent elements in Oppenheim's view of
War: (i) there has to be a contention between at least two States (ii) the use
of the armed forces of those States is required, (iii) the purpose must be
overpowering the enemy ( as well as the imposition of peace on the victor's
terms); and it may be implied, particularly from the words 'each other' and
(iv) both parties are expected to have symmetrical, although diametrically
opposed, goals."
The learned author commented that Oppenheim was entirely right in
excluding civil wars from his definition. Mr. Dinstein attempted the definition
of 'war' in the following terms:
"War is a hostile interaction between two or more States, either in
a technical or in a material sense. War in the technical sense is a formal
status produced by a declaration of war. War in the material sense is generated
by actual use of armed force, which must be comprehensive on the part of at
least one party to the conflict."
In international law, we have the allied concepts of undeclared war,
limited war, war-like situation7the nuances of which it is not necessary to
unravel.
There is no doubt that the offence of waging war was inserted in the
Indian Penal Code to accord with the concept of levying war in the English
Statutes of treason, the first of which dates back to 1351 A.D. It has been
said so in almost all the Indian High Courts' decisions of the pre-independence
days starting with AIR 1931 Rangoon 235. In Nazir Khan's case [2003 (8) SCC 461]
this Court said so in specific terms in paragraph 35 and extensively quoted
from the passages in old English cases. Sir Michael Foster's discourses on
treason and the passages from the decisions of the High courts referred to
therein are also found in Ratanlal's Law of Crimes. We should, therefore,
understand the expression "wages war" occurring in Section 121
broadly in the same sense in which it was understood in England while dealing
with the
corresponding expression in the Treason Statute. However, we have to
view the expression with the eyes of the people of free India and we must
modulate and restrict the scope of observations too broadly made in the vintage
decisions so as to be in keeping with the democratic spirit and the
contemporary conditions associated with the working of our democracy. The
oft-repeated phrase 'to attain the object of general public nature' coined by
Mansfield, LCJ and reiterated in various English and Indian decisions should
not be unduly elongated in the present day context.
On the analysis of the various passages found in the cases and
commentaries referred to above, what are the high-lights we come across? The
most important is the intention or purpose behind the defiance or rising
against the Government. As said by Foster, "The true criterion is quo
animo did the parties assemble"? In other words the intention and purpose
of the war-like operations directed against the Governmental machinery is an
important criterion. If the object and purpose is to strike at the sovereign
authority of the Ruler or the Government to achieve a public and general
purpose in contra-distinction to a private and a particular purpose, that is an
important indicia of waging war. Of course, the purpose must be intended to be
achieved by use of force and arms and by defiance of Government troops or armed
personnel deployed to maintain public tranquility. Though the modus operandi of
preparing for the offensive against the Government may be quite akin to the
preparation in a regular war, it is often said that the number of force, the
manner in which they are arrayed, armed or equipped is immaterial. Even a
limited number of persons who carry powerful explosives and missiles without
regard to their own safety can cause more devastating damage than a large group
of persons armed with ordinary weapons or fire arms. Then, the other settled
proposition is that there need not be the pomp and pageantry usually associated
with war such as the offenders forming themselves in battle-line and arraying
in a war like manner. Even a stealthy operation to overwhelm the armed or other
personnel deployed by the Government and to attain a commanding position by
which terms could be dictated to the Government might very well be an act of
waging war.
While these are the acceptable criteria of waging war, we must
dissociate ourselves from the old English and Indian authorities to the extent
that they lay down a too general test of attainment of an object of general
public nature or a political object. We have already expressed reservations in
adopting this test in its literal sense and construing it in a manner out of
tune with the present day. The Court must be cautious in adopting an approach
which has the effect of bringing within the fold of Section 121 all acts of
lawless and violent acts resulting in destruction of public properties etc.,
and all acts of violent resistance to the armed personnel to achieve certain
political objectives. The moment it is found that the object sought to be
attained is of general public nature or has a political hue, the offensive
violent acts targeted against armed forces and public officials should not be
branded as acts of waging war. The expression 'waging war' should not be
stretched too far to hold that all the acts of disrupting public order and
peace irrespective of their magnitude and repercussions could be reckoned as
acts of waging war against the Government. A balanced and realistic approach is
called for in construing the expression 'waging war' irrespective of how it was
viewed in the long long past. An organized movement attended with violence and
attacks against the public officials and armed forces while agitating for the
repeal of an unpopular law or for preventing burdensome taxes were viewed as
acts of treason in the form of levying war. We doubt whether such construction
is in tune with the modern day perspectives and standards. Another aspect on
which a clarification is called for is in regard to the observation made in the
old decisions that "neither the number engaged nor the force employed, nor
the species of weapons with which they may be armed" is really material to
prove the offence of levying/waging war. This was said by Lord President Hope
in R Vs. Hardie in 1820 and the same statement finds its echo in many other English
cases and in the case of Maganlal Radha Krishan Vs. Emperor [AIR 1946 Nagpur
173 at page 186]. But, in our view, these are not irrelevant factors. They will
certainly help the Court in forming an idea whether the intention and design to
wage war against the established Government exists or the offence falls short
of it. For instance, the fire power or the devastating potential of the arms
and explosives that may be carried by a group of
persons7may be large or small, as in the present case, and the scale of
violence that follows may at times become useful indicators of the nature and
dimension of the action resorted to. These, coupled with the other factors, may
give rise to an inference of waging war.
The single most important factor which impels us to think that this is a
case of waging or attempting to wage war against the Government of India is the
target of attack chosen by the slain terrorists and conspirators and the
immediate objective sought to be achieved thereby. The battle-front selected was
the Parliament House Complex. The target chosen was the Parliament7a symbol of
sovereignty of the Indian republic. Comprised of peoples' representatives, this
supreme law-making body steers the destinies of vast multitude of Indian
people. It is a constitutional repository of sovereign power that collectively
belongs to the people of India. The executive Government through the Council of
Ministers is accountable to Parliament. Parliamentary democracy is a basic and
inalienable feature of the Constitution. Entering the Parliament House with
sophisticated arms and powerful explosives with a view to lay a siege of that
building at a time when members of Parliament, members of Council of Ministers,
high officials and dignitaries of the Government of India gathered to transact
Parliamentary business, with the obvious idea of imperilling their safety and
destabilizing the functioning of Government and in that process, venturing to
engage the security forces guarding the Parliament in armed combat, amounts by
all reasonable perceptions of law and common sense, to waging war against the
Government. The whole of this well planned operation is to strike directly at
the sovereign authority and integrity of our Republic of which the Government
of India is an integral component. The attempted attack on the Parliament is an
undoubted invasion of the sovereign attribute of the State including the
Government of India which is its alter ego. The attack of this nature cannot be
viewed on the same footing as a terrorist attack on some public office building
or an incident resulting in the breach of public tranquility. The deceased
terrorists were roused and impelled to action by a strong anti-Indian feeling
as the writings on the fake Home Ministry sticker found on the car (Ext. PW
1/8) reveals. The huge and powerful explosives, sophisticated arms and
ammunition carried by the slain terrorists who were to indulge in 'Fidayeen'
operations with a definite purpose in view, is a clear indicator of the grave
danger in store for the inmates of the House. The planned operations if
executed, would have spelt disaster to the whole nation. A war-like situation
lingering for days or weeks would have prevailed. Such offensive acts of
unimaginable description and devastation would have posed a challenge to the
Government and the democratic institutions for the protection of which the
Government of the day stands. To underestimate it as a mere desperate act of a
small group of persons who were sure to meet death, is to ignore the obvious
realities and to stultify the wider connotation of the expression of 'war'
chosen by the drafters of IPC. The target, the obvious objective which has
political and public dimensions and the modus operandi adopted by the hard-core
'Fidayeens' are all demonstrative of the intention of launching a war against
the Government of India. We need not assess the chances of success of such an
operation to judge the nature of criminality. We are not impressed by the
argument that the five slain terrorists ought not to be 'exalted' to the status
of warriors participating in a war. Nor do we endorse the argument of the
learned senior counsel Mr. Sushil Kumar that in order to give rise to the
offence of waging war, the avowed purpose and design of the offence should be
to substitute another authority for the Government of India. According to
learned counsel, the deprivation of sovereignty should be the pervading aim of
the accused in order to bring the offence under Section 121 and that is lacking
in the present case. We find no force in this contention. The undoubted
objective and determination of the deceased terrorists was to impinge on the
sovereign authority of the nation and its Government. Even if the conspired
purpose and objective falls short of installing some other authority or entity
in the place of an established Government, it does not in our view detract from
the offence of waging war. There is no warrant for such truncated
interpretation.
The learned senior counsel Mr. Ram Jethmalani also contended that
terrorism and war are incompatible with each other. War is normative in the
sense that rules of war governed by international conventions are observed
whereas terrorism is lawless, according to the learned counsel. This contention
presupposes that the terrorist attacks directed against the institutions
and the machinery of the Government can never assume the character of war. The
argument is also based on the assumption that the expression 'war' in Section
121 does not mean anything other than war in the strict sense as known in
international circles i.e. organized violence among sovereign States by means
of military operations. We find no warrant for any of these assumptions and the
argument built up on the basis of these assumptions cannot be upheld. In the
preceding paras, we have already clarified that concept of war in Section 121
which includes insurrection or a civilian uprising should not be understood in
the sense of conventional war between two nations or sovereign entities. The
normative phenomenon of war as understood in international sense does not fit
into the ambit and reach of Section 121.
The learned senior counsel Mr. Ram Jethmalani argued that in a case of
war, the primary and intended target must be combatants as distinguished from
civilians, though the latter may be incidentally killed or injured and that
feature is lacking in the present case. This contention, though plausible it
is, does not merit acceptance. When an attack on the Parliament was planned,
the executors of this plan should have envisaged that they will encounter
resistance from the police and other armed security personnel deployed on duty
fairly in large numbers at the Parliament complex. The slain terrorists and
other conspirators should have necessarily aimed at overpowering or killing the
armed personnel who would naturally come in their way. Inflicting casualties on
the police and security personnel on duty as well as civilians if necessary
would have been part of the design and planning of these hard-core terrorists
and the criminal conspirators. It is not necessary that in order to constitute
the offence of waging war, military or other forces should have been the direct
target of attack. There is no such hard and fast rule and nothing was said to
that effect in the long line of cases referred to supra. The act laying siege
of Parliament House or such other act of grave consequences to the Government
and the people is much more reflective of the intention to wage war rather than
an attack launched against a battalion of armed men guarding the border or
vital installations.
Another point urged by Mr. Ram Jethmalani is that no violence or even
military operations can become war unless it is formally declared to be such by
the Central Government. So long as the Government does not formally declare an
operation to be war, it is contended that a state of peace is supposed to exist
however badly it may be disturbed. It is further contended that the
participants in the war are to be treated as the prisoners of war and they are
not amenable to the jurisdiction of domestic criminal Courts. It is pointed out
that the Hague convention and other international covenants which are embodied
in Schedule III of the Geneva Convention Act, 1960 lay down the rules as to who
the prisoners of war are and how they should be treated. In substance, it is
contended that Section 121 IPC cannot be invoked against the participants in an
undeclared 'war'. These arguments proceed on the assumption that the expression
'war' occurring in the Penal Code is almost synonymous with war in
international law sense. The question of formal declaration of war by the
Government would only arise in a case of outbreak of armed conflict with
another country or a political group having the support of another nation. It
may be, in a case of civil war and a rebellion spreading through the length and
breadth of the country, the Government will have to control it on war footing
and it might even consider it expedient to declare that a state of war exists,
but, this theoretical possibility cannot be a guiding factor in construing the
expression 'waging war' in Section 121 especially when there is no legal
provision mandating the Government to make such declaration. It was next
contended that foreign nationals who intrude into the territory of India and do
not owe even temporary allegiance to the Government of India cannot be charged
of the offence of waging war. In other words, the contention is that a person
who is not a citizen nor a resident alien cannot be accused of high treason.
The decisions of House of Lords in Joys vs. DPP [1946 All ER page 186] and of
Privy Council in Lodewyk Johannes vs. AG of Natal [1907 AC 326] have been
referred to. The dicta in Anthony Crammer Vs. USA [325 US pages 1-77] and in
the case of United States vs. Villato [1797 CC Pennsylvania Page 419] have also
been referred to in support of his proposition. The learned counsel has also
placed reliance on Sec. 13 of the 2nd Report of the Law Commissioners on the
Indian Penal Code,
the excerpts of which are given in Nazir Khan's case [(2003) 8 SCC 461
at 486]. The Law Commissioners observed thus:
"The law of a particular nation or country cannot be applied to any
persons but such as owe allegiance to the Government of the country, which
allegiance is either perpetual, as in the case of a subject by birth or
naturalization &c. or temporary, as in the case of a foreigner residing in
the country. They are applicable of course to all such as thus owe allegiance
to the Government, whether as subjects or foreigners, excepting as excepted by
reservations or limitations which are parts of the law in question."
We find it difficult to sustain the argument of learned Senior Counsel.
The word 'whoever' is a word of broad import. Advisedly such language was used
departing from the observations made in the context of Treason statute. We find
no good reason why the foreign nationals stealthily entering into the Indian
territory with a view to subverting the functioning of the Government and
destabilizing the society should not be held guilty of waging war within the
meaning of Section 121. The section on its plain terms, need not be confined
only to those who owe allegiance to the established Government. We do not have
the full text of the Law Commissioners' Report and we are not in a position to
know whether the Law Commissioners or the drafters of Indian Penal Code wanted
to exclude from the ambit of Section 121 the unauthorized foreigners sneaking
into Indian territory to undertake war like operations against the Government.
Moreover, we have no material before us to hold that the views of Law
Commissioners on this aspect, were accepted. Those views, assuming that they
are clearly discernible from the extracted passage, need not be the sole
guiding factor to construe the expression 'waging war'. Though the above
observations were noticed in Nazir Khan's case, the ultimate decision in the
case shows that the guilt of the accused was not judged from that standpoint.
On the other hand, the conviction of foreigners (Pakistani militants) was upheld
in that case.
Another contention advanced by the learned counsel is that war including
civil war must have a representative character and the persons participating in
the war should represent a political entity, which has the objective of
overthrowing the Government and securing the sovereign status. This contention
too has no force in view of what we have said above regarding the scope and
ambit of the expression 'war'.
Thus, the criminal acts done by the deceased terrorists in order to
capture the Parliament House is an act that amounts to waging or attempting to
wage war. The conspiracy to commit either the offence of waging war or
attempting to wage war or abetting the waging of war is punishable under
Section 121A IPC with the maximum sentence of imprisonment for life. In the
circumstances of the case, the imposition of maximum sentence is called for and
the High Court is justified in holding the appellant Afzal guilty under Section
121A IPC and sentencing him to life imprisonment. In addition, the High Court
has also held the appellant guilty of the offence under Section 121 IPC itself
on the premise that he abetted the waging of war. The sentence of life
imprisonment imposed by the trial Court was enhanced to death sentence by the
High Court. We feel that the conclusion reached by the High Court both in
regard to the applicability of Section 121 IPC and the punishment, is correct
and needs no interference. The High Court observed: "if not acts of waging
war, what they did would certainly be acts of abetting the waging of war".
In this connection, we may clarify that the expression 'abetment' shall not be
construed to be an act of instigating the other conspirators (i.e. the deceased
terrorists). There is another shade of meaning to 'abetment' given in Section
107 IPC. It is clause secondly of Section 107 which is attracted in the case of
Afzal. We quote the relevant portion of Section 107 IPC, which reads as
follows:
107. A person abets the doing of a thing7 Secondly.7Engages with one or
more other person or persons in any conspiracy for the doing of that thing, if
an act or illegal omission takes place in pursuance of that conspiracy, and in
order to the doing of that thing;
As criminal acts took place pursuant to the conspiracy, the appellant,
as
a party to the conspiracy, shall be deemed to have abetted the offence.
In fact, he took active part in a series of steps taken to pursue the objective
of conspiracy. The offence of abetting the waging of war, having regard to the
extraordinary facts and circumstances of this case, justifies the imposition of
capital punishment and therefore the judgment of the High Court in regard to
the conviction and sentence of Afzal under Section 121 IPC shall stand. The
trial Court as well as the High Court also convicted the appellant Afzal under
Section 3 of Explosive Substances Act (for short 'E.S. Act') and sentenced him
to life imprisonment and to pay a fine of Rs.25000/-. Under Section 4 of E.S.
Act, he was sentenced to 20 years R.I. and to pay a fine of Rs.25000/-.
We are of the view that Clause (a) of Section 4 of E.S.Act is attracted
in the instant case and the appellant Afzal is liable to be punished under the
first part of the punishment provision. The relevant part of Section 4 of E.S.
Act is as follows:
4. Punishment for attempt to cause explosion, or for making or keeping
explosive with intent to endanger life or property.7Any person who unlawfully
and maliciously7
(a) does any act with intent to cause by an explosive substance or
special category explosive substance, or conspires to cause by an explosive
substance or special category explosive substance, an explosion of a nature
likely to endanger life or to cause serious injury to property; or (emphasis
supplied)
(b) ####BODY####5
shall, whether any explosion does or does not take place and whether any
injury to person or property has been actually caused or not, be punished7
(i) in the case of any explosive substance, with imprisonment for life,
or with imprisonment of either description for a term which may extend to ten
years, and shall also be liable to fine;
The expression 'explosive substance' according to Section 2(a) shall be
deemed to include any materials for making any explosive substance; also any
apparatus, machine, implement or material used, or intended to be used, or
adapted for causing, or aiding in causing, any explosion in or with any
explosive substance.
The planned attack on the Parliament House, by the use of explosives and
fire power, was evidently a part of the conspiracy to which Afzal was a party.
The preparation of explosives meant to be used by terrorists (co- conspirators)
in the course of the planned attack of the Parliament House was well within the
knowledge of Afzal. He, in fact, procured the materials i.e. chemicals etc.,
for facilitating the preparation of explosive substances at the hideouts. This
is what the evidence on record clerly points out. He is, therefore, liable to
punished under clause (a) read with (i) of Section 4 of POTA and accordingly he
shall be sentenced to the maximum sentence of imprisonment for life and a fine
of Rs.10000/-, in default of which, he shall undergo R.I. for six months.
However, the conviction under Section 3 of the Explosive Substances Act
is set aside as we are of the view that the ingredients of the said Section are
not satisfied in order to find Afzal guilty under that Section. Thus, Afzal
will have life sentence on three counts. However, as he is sentenced to death,
the sentence of life imprisonment will naturally get merged into the death
sentence.
The appeal of Afzal is accordingly dismissed, subject to the setting
aside of convictions under Section 3(2) of POTA and Section 3 of Explosive
Substances Act.
19. CASE OF SHAUKAT (A2)
As in the case of Mohd. Afzal, the evidence against Shaukat Hussain
consists of confessional statement made to the Deputy Commissioner of Police
and the circumstantial evidence.
(i) Confession
The confessional statement said to have been recorded by PW607the DCP,
Special Cell at 3.30 p.m. on 21.12.2001 is marked as PW60/6. As per
Ext.PW60/11, the DCP administered the statutory warning and obtained an
endorsement from Shaukat that he was not under any duress and he was ready to
give the statement. We shall briefly refer to the contents of the confessional
statement.
Shaukat spoke about his graduation in 1992 in Delhi, his acquaintance
with SAR Gilani of Baramulla who was doing his post-graduation in Arabic
language, starting fruit business in 1997 and disbanding the same, his marriage
with a Sikh girl named Navjot Sandhu @ Afsan Guru (A4) in the year 2000,
purchase of truck in her name in June, 2000 and starting transport business,
his cousin Afzal of Sopore studying in Delhi University in 1990 and his
friendship with Gilani at that time. Then he stated about Afzal motivating him
to join the jihad in Kashmir and in October, 2001, Afzal calling him from
Kashmir and asking him to arrange a rented house for himself and another
militant, accordingly arranging rented accommodation in Boys' Hostel at
Christian Colony and Afzal accompanied by the militant Mohammed coming to Delhi
and meeting him at his house in Mukherji Nagar and Afzal disclosing to him that
he was a Pak national of Jaish-e-Mohammad militant outfit and had come to Delhi
for carrying out a 'fidayeen' attack. He then stated that during that period,
he discussed about jihad with SAR Gilani who also offered help in carrying out
the attack and Afzal thereafter going to Srinagar and bringing some other
militants who were Pak nationals and who brought with them arms and explosives
and they being accommodated at A-97, Gandhi Vihar and Afzal and Mohammed making
preparations for the attacks. He then stated about the change of his mobile
number as a precautionary measure and about his talks with Ghazibaba, Mohammed
and Afzal from his previous number and lending his motorcycle. Then he stated
that meetings were also held at his house for discussion and execution of the
plans and his wife was also in the knowledge of their plans. Then he stated
about the purchase of a second hand Ambassador car by Afzal and Mohammed,
taking another rented accommodation in Indira Vihar. He then stated that on the
night of 12.12.2001, he along with Afzal and Gilani met Mohammed and other
militants at their Gandhi Vihar hideout and Mohammed gave Laptop computer and
Rs.10 lakhs to Afzal with a direction to handover the Laptop to Ghazibaba and
the money to be distributed among Afzal, Gilani and himself. Mohammed told them
that the next day i.e. 13.12.2001, they were going to carry out 'fidayeen'
attack on the Parliament House. He then stated that Afzal called him from his
mobile phone number ####BODY####5.89429 and asked him to watch TV and report
about the latest position of the movement of VIPs in Parliament. By the time he
switched on the TV, he received another call from Afzal that the mission was
on. Thereafter, he met Afzal at Azadpur Mandi and both of them went to Gilani's
house to give him Rs.2 lakhs. However Gilani wanted them to hand it over at his
house in Kashmir. Finally, he stated that he along with Afzal left for Srinagar
in his truck on the same day and they were apprehended at Srinagar on 15th
December, 2001 and the Laptop and cash recovered by the police and later they
were brought to Delhi.
Shaukat was produced before the ACMM by PW80 the next day along with the
other accused and the ACMM recorded his statement. The ACMM had gone through
the same procedure as in he case of Afzal and recorded the statement that there
was no complaint against the police personnel and that Shaukat confirmed making
the confessional statement before DCP any police pressure.
The first date on which Shaukat retracted the confession was on
19.1.2002 when he filed an application before the Designated Court expressing
certain doubts about the 'verbal confession made before Special Cell'. He
expressed that the Delhi Police would have twisted the confession 'in a
different way and different formation'. He further stated that he was made to
sign blank papers and was not allowed to read the confessional statement before
he signed it. Therefore, he requested the Court to record his statement afresh.
Another application was filed on 3rd June, 2002 i.e. after the charge-
sheet was filed disputing the proceedings recorded by the ACMM when he
was produced before the Magistrate on 22nd December and also stating that he
gave verbal confessional statement before a Special Cell Officer and not before
DCP or ACP. He maintained that he was forced to sign some blank papers. The
difference between the case of Afzal and Shaukat in regard to confessional
statement is that the retraction was done by Shaukat much earlier i.e. within a
month after it was recorded by the DCP. The other point of difference is that
Shaukat was sent to judicial custody unlike Afzal who was sent to police
custody after they were produced before the ACMM. The same reasons which we
have given in regard to the confessional statement of Afzal, hold good in the
case of Shaukat as well except with respect to the breach of requirement as to
judicial custody. The procedural safeguards incorporated in Sections 50(2),
50(3) & 50(4) are violated in this case also. True, Shaukat was sent to judicial
custody after his statement was recorded by the Magistrate. But in the absence
of legal advice and the opportunity to interact with the lawyer, there is
reason to think that he would not have been aware of the statutory mandate
under Section 32(5) and therefore the lurking fear of going back to police
custody could have been present in his mind. The learned ACMM did not apprise
him of the fact that he would no longer be in police custody. There is also
nothing to show that the confessional statement was read over to him or at
least a gist of it has been made known to him.
On the point of truth of the confessional statement, we have, while
discussing the case of Afzal, adverted to certain comments made by the learned
counsel for the appellants in order to demonstrate that the alleged confession
cannot be true judged from the standpoint of probabilities and natural course
of human conduct. Of course, we have not rested our conclusion on these
submissions, though we commented that they were 'plausible and persuasive'.
However, in the case of Shaukat, there is one additional point which deserves
serious notice. According to his version in the confession statement, his wife
Afsan Guru (A4) was also having knowledge of their plans. Is it really
believable that he would go to the extent of implicating his pregnant wife in
the crime. It casts a serious doubt whether some embellishments were made in
the confessional statement. We are not inclined to express a final opinion on
this point as we are in any way excluding the confession from consideration on
the ground of violation of procedural safeguards and the utterly inadequate
time given by PW 60 for reflection.
The other point which was harped upon by the learned counsel Mr. Shanti
Bhushan was that Shaukat and Afzal were not produced before the DCP in the
forenoon on 21st December, 2001 as directed by him. In the first instance,
Gilani was produced and when he was not prepared to give the statement, the
learned counsel suggests that Shaukat and Afzal were taken back to police cell
and subjected to threats and it was only after ensuring that they would make
the confession, they were produced before the DCP late in the evening. It is
contended that the reason given for not producing them at the appointed time is
not convincing. Though the possibility pointed by the learned counsel cannot be
ruled out, yet, the argument is in the realm of surmise and we are not inclined
to discredit the confession on this ground. Excluding the confession from
consideration for the reasons stated supra, we have to examine the
circumstantial evidence against Shaukat and assess whether he joined in
conspiracy with Afzal and the deceased terrorists to attack the Parliament
House or whether he is guilty of any other offence. The circumstances analyzed
by the High Court and put against the accused Shaukat Hussain in the concluding
part of the judgment, apart from the confession, are the following:
1. He along with Afzal took on rent room No.5, Boys' Hostel, B- 41,
Christian Colony on 7.11.2001 in which room the deceased terrorist Mohammed had
stayed.
2. Cell phone No. 9810446375 which was recovered from the house of
Shaukat was for the first time made operational on 2nd November, 2001. This
conincides with the period when Afzal acquired a mobile phone and the first
hideout was procured. This number was in contact with the satellite phone No.
8821651150059 and was also in communication with the
mobile No. 9810693456 recovered from the deceased terrorist Mohammed, on
which number Mohammed had received calls from the same satellite phone No.
8821651150059, and even Afzal had received phone calls from this number. This
establishes that Shaukat was in touch with Afzal and Mohammed during the period
November-December, 2001 and all the three were in contact with the same
satellite phone No. 8821651150059.
3. Shaukat's motorcycle was recovered form the hideout and was used for
recee by the terrorists.
4. Shaukat along with Afzal had left the premises A-97, Gandhi Vihar
along with 4/5 other boys in the morning of 13.12.2001 at about 10 a.m. in an
Ambassador Car.
5. When the Parliament was under attack, Afzal was in touch with
Mohammed. Shaukat was in touch with Afzal. He was thus in contact with the
co-conspirators and the deceased terrorists at the time of attack.
6. Shaukat had been visiting Afzal at A-97, Gandhi Vihar and 281, Indira
Vihar. He had also accompanied him when the room at the Boys' Hostel at
Christian Colony was taken on rent. It cannot be inferred that Shaukat was
merely moving around with his cousin. Keeping in view the totality of the
evidence, Shaukat was equally liable for what was happening at the hideouts.
7. Shaukat was present in Delhi till the forenoon of 13.12.2001 when
Parliament was under attack and he absconded along with Afzal when both of them
were arrested at Srinagar. His conduct, post attack, is incriminating.
8. The laptop recovered from the truck belonging to wife of Shaukat was
the one which was used by the terrorists to create the identity cards of Xansa
Websity and the fake Home Ministry stickers.
The High Court then commented at paragraph 4027 "Shaukat's role in
the conspiracy was clearly that of an active participant. Evidence on record
does not show that he has been brought within the sweep of the dragnet of
conspiracy by merely being seen associated with Afzal. There is more than mere
knowledge, acquiescence, carelessness, indifference or lack of concern. There
is clear and cogent evidence of informed and interested co-operation,
simulation and instigation against accused Shaukat. Evidence qua Shaukat
clearly establishes the steps from knowledge to intent and finally
agreement".
Taking into account the confessional statement which stands corroborated
by various circumstances proved, the High Court reached the inevitable
conclusion that Shaukat was a party to the agreement constituting conspiracy.
Once the confessional statement is excluded, the evidence against Shaukat gets
substantially weakened and it is not possible to conclude beyond reasonable
doubt on the basis of the other circumstances enumerated by the High Court,
that Shaukat had joined the conspiracy to attack the Parliament House and did
his part to fulfill the mission of the conspirators. Apart from the confession,
the High Court seems to have been influenced by the fact that Shaukat was in
touch with his cousin as well as the deceased terrorist Mohammed through cell
phone. But this finding, as far as telephonic contact with Mohammed is
concerned, is not borne out by the cell phone records on which the prosecution
relied. There was no occasion on which Shaukat contacted Mohammed or any other
terrorist. To this extent, there seems to be an error in the High Court's
finding in the last
sentence of circumstance No.2. The inference drawn in relation to
circumstance No.6 that Shaukat "was equally liable for what was happening
at the hideouts", cannot also be accepted. He may have knowledge of what
was going on but it could not be said that he was equally liable for the acts
done by the deceased terrorists and Afzal, unless there is enough material
apart from the confession, to conclude that he was a party to the conspiracy.
With these comments on the findings of the High Court, let us see what
could and could not be put against the appellant Shaukat. We undertake the exercise
of referring in brief to the evidence touching on each of the circumstances
adverted to by the High Court while noting the comments of Mr. Shanti Bhushan
wherever necessary.
(ii) Circumstance No.1
Shaukat in the company of Afzal seeking the assistance of PW38 who was
running STD booth in Christian Colony to get a room on rent and approaching the
proprietor of Boys' Hostel (PW37) and taking a room in the hostel on rent is
established by the evidence of PW377the propretor. Both PWs 37 & 38
identified Shaukat apart from Afzal. The more important piece of evidence is
the fact revealed by PW37 that he saw one Ruhail Ali Shah staying in the room
who showed his I.Card to him on enquiries. The identity card (Ext.PW4/4) which
was shown to PW38 was identified when the two accused led the police to the
hostel on 19.12.2001 itself. He also identified the accused Afzal and Shaukat,
both before the police as well as in the Court. The fact that Shaukat and Afzal
were coming to see Ruhail Ali Shah, who was no other than Mohammed, was also
spoken to by him. The photograph7Ext.PW29/5 of Ruhail Ali Shah, whose real name
was Mohammed, was also identified by him. The contention of the learned counsel
appearing for Shaukat that test identification parade ought to have been held,
cannot be accepted having regard to the legal position clarified by us in the
earlier part of the judgment. The fact that PW37 did not produce the register
expected to be maintained by him, does not also discredit his testimony which
has been believed by both the Courts.
(iii) Circumstance Nos.2 & 5 (phone contacts)
The evidence of the investigating officer7PW 66 and PW67 reveals that
two mobile phone instruments were recovered on 15th December, 2001 from the
house of Shaukat. One of them, namely, Ext.PW36/1 with the phone No.9811573506
was recovered from the hand of Afsan Guru. This was after the telephonic
conversation over this number at 20.09 hours was intercepted on the night of
14th December. It transpired that the said conversation was between her and her
husband Shaukat speaking from Srinagar. Another cell phone instrument with the
number 9810446375 which was operated upto 7th December, 2001 was also found in
the house and the same was seized. The call records indicate frequent contacts
between Shaukat and Gilani and Shaukat and Afzal from the first week of
November, 2001 upto 13th December, 2001. On the crucial day i.e. 13th December,
2001 just before the Parliament attack, Mohammed spoke to Afzal at 10.43 and
11.08 hours and then Afzal spoke to Shaukat at 11.19 hours and thereafter
Mohammed spoke to Afzal at 11.25 hours and Afzal in turn called Shaukat at
11.32 hours. Mr. Shanti Bhushan has challenged the truth of recoveries of
phones on the ground that no independent witnesses were required to witness the
recovery. The learned counsel has relied on the decisions in Sahib Singh Vs.
State of Punjab [(1996) 11 SCC 685, paras 5 & 6] and Kehar Singh Vs. State
(Delhi Administration) [(1988) 3 SCC 609 at page 654, para 54] to show that in
the absence of independent witnesses being associated with search the seizure
cannot be relied upon. We do not think that any such inflexible proposition was
laid down in those cases. On the other hand we have the case of Sanjay v. NCT
[(2001) 3 SCC 190], wherein it was observed at para. 30, that the fact that no
independent witness was associated with recoveries is not a ground and that the
Investigation Officers evidence need not always be disbelieved. Of course, closer
scrutiny of evidence is what is required. Having regard to the fact situation
in the present case, the police officers cannot be faulted for not going in
search of the witnesses in the locality. There is no law that the evidence of
police officials in regard to seizure ought to be discarded. They took the help
of Gilani who by then was in police custody to locate the house of Shaukat and
that Gilani was with the police, was mentioned by Afsan Guru in
her Section 313 statement.
The next point urged by the learned counsel for the appellant that the
details regarding sales of mobile phones and SIM cards was not checked up from
the distributors of AIRTEL or ESSAR does not also affect the credibility of
recoveries. Such omissions in investigation cannot be magnified. The learned
counsel Mr. Shanti Bhushan as well as Mr. Sushil Kumar contended that it was
quite likely that all the deceased terrorists were having one mobile phone
each, but only three were shown to have been recovered and the other two must
have been foisted on the accused giving the colour of recovery from them. We
find no justification for this comment. Another point urged is that the
recovery of phones shown to be after 10.45 a.m. on 15th December cannot be true
as Afsan Guru was arrested on the night of 14th December, as held by the trial
Court on the basis of testimony of Srinagar police witnesses that the
information about the truck given by Afsan Guru was received early in the
morning of 15th December. It is therefore pointed out that the prosecution did
not come forward with the correct version of the search and recovery of the
articles in the house of Shaukat. In this context, it must be noted that Afsan
Guru (A4) was not consistent in her stand about the time of arrest. Whereas in
her statement under Section 313, she stated that she was arrested on 14th
December between 6.00 & 7.00 p.m. In the course of cross examination of
PW67, it was suggested that she was arrested at 6 or 6.30 a.m. on 15th
December, 2001. Her version in the statement under Section 313 cannot be
correct for the reason that the intercepted conversation was at 8.12 p.m. on
14th December, 2001 and the police could have acted only thereafter. Though the
time of arrest, as per the prosecution version, seems to be doubtful, from
that, it cannot be inferred that the search and recovery was false. One does
not lead to the other inference necessarily. The search and recovery of phones
having been believed by both the Courts, we are not inclined to disturb that
finding. In any case, the fact that the phone No. ####BODY####573506 was in the
possession of Afsan Guru stands proved from the intercepted conversation and
the evidence regarding the identification of voice.
Next, it was contended that the printouts/call records have not been proved
in the manner laid down by Section 63, 65A & 65B of the Evidence Act. This
point has been dealt with while dealing with the case of Afzal and we have
upheld the admissibility and reliability of the call records. The point
concerning the duplicate entries has already been considered in the case of
Afzal and for the same reasons we find no substance in this contention in
regard to some of the duplicate entries in the call records.
(iv) Circumstance No.3 (Recovery of motorcycle of Shaukat from 281, Indira
Vihar)
The fact that the Yamaha Escorts motorcycle with the registration
No.DL1SA3122 belonged to Shaukat Hussain, is borne out by the registration
records produced by PW53. In fact, in the course of Section 313 examination, he
did not deny that fact. This motorcycle was found at 281, Indira Vihar as seen
from the evidence of PW76 and PW32. Shaukat together with Afzal led the police
to the said premises at Indira Vihar as seen from the 'pointing out and seizure
memo' (Ext.PW32/1) coupled with the evidence of PW76. PW32/1 was attested by
PW32 also who was present at the time of search. As per the evidence of PW32,
Mohd. Afzal whom he identified in the Court, had taken the 2nd Floor on rent on
9.12.2001 through the property dealer7PW31. PW32 stated that five or six
persons were found in the upstairs on 11th December, 2001. When enquired as to
why they were in the flat instead of his family, Afzal stated that they would
be leaving soon. On 12th December, 2001 Afzal left the premises after putting
the lock which was broken open by the police on 16th December. We have already
noticed that the chemicals used for preparation of the explosives which were
purchased by Afzal were recovered from the premises in the presence of PW32.
Six detonators in a plastic container were also found. Though PW32 claimed to
have identified the photographs of the deceased terrorists as those who were
found in the premises, this part of the evidence is not entitled to any weight
as rightly contended by Mr. Shanti Bhushan. PW32 stated that the police showed
him some photographs and told him that those were the photos of the slain
terrorists who attacked the Parliament. Thus, the so called identification by
PW32 on the revelation by the police cannot be relied upon. In fact, the High
Court did not believe this witness on the point of identification of photos
(vide
paragraph 326 of judgment). However it is quite clear from the chemicals
and explosive materials found there that this hideout was taken by Afzal to
accommodate the deceased terrorists who stayed there to do preparatory acts.
The fact that Shaukat's motorcycle was also found there, would give rise to a
reasonable inference that Shaukat kept it for use by Afzal and his companions.
It also reinforces the conclusion that Shaukat was aware of the Indira Vihar
abode of these persons.
(v) Circumstance No.4 & 6 (Shaukat's visits to Gandhi Vihar hideout)
The evidence of PW34 who let out the 2nd Floor of his house at A-97,
Gandhi Vihar to the accused Afzal through PW337the property dealer, reveals
that Shaukat used to come to meet Afzal who was staying there under a false
name of Maqsood and that Shaukat used to meet Afzal at that place. PW34
identified Afzal and Shaukat. From the house in Gandhi Vihar, sulphur packets
(purchased by Afzal), Sujata Mixer grinder in which traces of explosive
material were detected, were found. PW34 identified the photograph of the
terrorist Mohammed (Ext.PW1/20) as the person who stayed with Afzal for a few
days in the premises. He stated that he could only identify the photograph of
Mohammed but not rest of them when the police showed him the photographs. His
evidence on the point of identification of Mohammed's photograph inspires
confidence as Mohammed stayed in the premises for a few days. The witness also
deposed to the fact that on 13th December, 2001, Afzal, Shaukat and four more
persons left the premises around 10 a.m. and all excepting Afzal got into an
Ambassador car and Afzal came back to the premises. However, he did not mention
that one of the accompanying persons was Mohammed. His evidence establishes
that Shaukat was a frequent visitor to Gandhi Vihar hideout and he was with
Afzal and some others even on the crucial day. (v) Circumstance Nos. 7 & 8
That after the attack on 13th December, Afzal and Shaukat left for
Srinagar in the truck owned by the wife of Shaukat and that the laptop, mobile
phone and cash of Rs. 10 lacs was recovered, is established by unimpeachable
evidence. In her examination under Section 313 Cr.P.C. Afsan admitted that her
husband left Delhi in the truck to Srinagar on 13th December though she
expressed her ignorance about Afzal going with him. There is the evidence of PW
61, DSP at Srinagar that they stopped the truck near the police station at
Parampura and on the pointing out of Afzal and Shaukat they recovered the
laptop, mobile phone and Rs. 10 lacs from the truck and the two accused were
arrested at 11.45 a.m. on 15th December. Evidence of PW 61 was corroborated by
PW 62, another police officer. There is a controversy on the question as to
when the Srinagar police received the information, i.e., whether at 10.30 or so
on 15th December or in the early morning hours of 15th December. But the fact
cannot be denied that Srinagar police acted on the information received from
Delhi about the truck number which was conveyed by Afsan (A4). PWs 64 and 65,
the police officers of Delhi also testified that Afzal and Shaukat were handed
over to them along with the seized articles on 15th December at 1 P.M. as they
reached Srinagar by a special aircraft. The stand taken by Shaukat was that he
was arrested in Delhi from his house on 14th December which is obviously false
in view of the plethora of evidence referred to supra. As regards the truck, he
stated in the course of Section 313 examination that the truck loaded with
bananas was sent to Srinagar on the night of 13th December. The falsity of
Shaukat's version of arrest in Delhi on 14th is established by the fact that on
the night of 14th, Shaukat did call up from Srinagar and spoke to his wife
Afsan, the receiving number being ####BODY####573506 which was later recovered
from the house of Shaukat. The Conversation was taped and PW487the Senior
Scientific Officer in CFSL, Delhi compared the voice samples of Shaukat and
Afsan Guru sent to him with the voice on the cassette which recorded
intercepted conversation. He made auditory and spectrographic analysis of voice
samples. He submitted a report Ext. PW 48/1. PW 48 testified that on comparison
the voice was found to be the same. The High Court doubted the authenticity of
the intercepted conversation on the ground that duration noted by the expert in
his report was two minutes and 16 seconds was at variance with the duration of
49 seconds noted in the call records. The High Court laboured under the
mistaken impression that the duration was 2 minutes and 16 seconds which was
the duration of conversation between Gilani and his brother. Even then there is
some discrepancy (between 49 and 74 seconds which according to PW48 was
approximate) but no question was put to PW 48 in this regard nor any suggestion
was put to PW 48 that the voice was not the same. If any such challenge was
made the trial Court would have heard the conversation from the tape and noted
the duration. We are, therefore, of the view that the finding as regards
interception of truck, recovery of laptop etc. from the truck and the arrest of
Shaukat along with Afzal on 15th December at about 11.45 A.M. at Srinagar
cannot be doubted. As already discussed, the laptop computer stored highly
incriminating material relating to the identity cards found with the deceased
and the Home Ministry stickers pasted on the car used by them.
In addition to the above circumstances, the prosecution has placed
reliance on the evidence of PW45 who is the landlord of Shaukat to prove that
not only Afzal but also the deceased terrorists used to come to Shaukat's
residence on the first floor a few days before the incident. In addition, PW45
stated that he had seen the persons, whose photographs he identified going to
Shaukat's residence often two or three days prior to 13th December. The
photographs were those of the deceased terrorists. He stated that he was
running a printing press in the ground floor from where he could see the people
going to the first floor. He also stated that he was called by police in the
Special Cell at Lodi Road on 17th December and he was shown some photographs
which he identified as those relating to the persons visiting Shaukat and
Navjot. But, we find no evidence of his identification before he was examined
in the Court. It is difficult to believe that he would be in a position to
identify (in the Court) after a lapse of eight months the casual visitors going
to the first floor of Shaukat by identifying their photographs. In fact, in
some of the photographs, the face is found so much disfigured on account of
injuries that it would be difficult to make out the identity on seeing such
photographs. Yet, he claimed to have identified the photographs of all the five
deceased terrorists as those visiting Shaukat's residence. He stated that he
could not identify Gilani as the person who was visiting Shaukat's residence at
that crucial time but after a leading question was put, he identified Gilani in
the Court. The High Court did not attach any weight to his evidence regarding
identification of the deceased terrorists. Though the trial Court referred to
his evidence inextenso, no view was expressed by the trial Court on the point
of reliability of his evidence regarding identification. Moreover, we find
considerable force in the argument of the learned counsel for the appellant
that it is hard to believe that the terrorists would take the risk of going to
Shaukat's place for the so called meetings thereby exposing to the risk of
being suspected, especially, at a place where two police sub-inspectors were
staying as stated by PW 45. Even according to the prosecution case, by that
time, the deceased terrorists had settled down at their respective hide-outs
with the help of Afzal. In the normal course, the terrorists would not have
ventured to go out frequently and if necessary they would call Shaukat for a
meeting at their place of stay instead of the whole gang going to Shaukat's
place frequently. For all these reasons we have to discard the evidence of PW
45 insofar as he testified that the deceased terrorists were the frequent
visitors of Shaukat's residence before the incident.
In addition to the above circumstances, the prosecution has placed
reliance on the evidence of PW45 who is the landlord of Shaukat to prove that
not only Afzal but also the deceased terrorists used to come to Shaukat's
residence on the first floor a few days before the incident.
The prosecution also relied on another circumstance, namely, that
Shaukat had accompanied Afzal to the shop of PW49 on 4th December, 2001 to
purchase a Motorola make mobile phone which was ultimately recovered from the
deceased terrorist Rana at the spot. No doubt PW49 stated that when Afzal came
to purchase telephone from the shop, the accused Shaukat present in the Court
was also with him. We are not inclined to place reliance on the testimony of
PW41 regarding Shaukat's presence. It would be difficult for any one to
remember the face of an accompanying person after a considerable lapse of time.
The High Court did not place reliance on this circumstance. There are, however,
two circumstances which can be put against the accused Shaukat. The secondhand
motorcycle No. HR 51E-5768 was sold to Mohd. Afzal on 8th December. He
identified Afzal and Shaukat in the Court as the persons who came to his shop
on that day in the company of two others
including a lady. He also identified them at the Special Cell on 19th
December. He could not identify the lady as Afsan. However, he identified the
photograph of the deceased terrorist Mohammed at the Special Cell on 19th
December and also in the Court. This motorcycle of Afzal was recovered from the
hideout at A-97, Gandhi Vihar which Shaukat used to visit frequently. His
presence at the shop with Mohammed apart from Afzal would show that he had
acquaintance with Mohammed also. The evidence of this witness has been
criticized on the ground that test identification parade could have been held
and that there was discrepancy in regard to the date of seizure memo of the
bill book. These are not substantial grounds to discredit the testimony of an
independent witness7 PW29. The High Court was inclined to place reliance on
this witness in regard to the identification of the deceased terrorist having
regard to the fact that they would have been in the shop for taking trial etc.,
and that the witness would have had enough opportunity to observe the buyer's
party for quite some time.
Another circumstance that ought to be taken into account against Shaukat
is the telephonic conversation between him and his wife Afsan on the night of
14th December. We have already held that the intercepted conversation recorded
on the tape is reliable and the High Court should not have discounted it. The
conversation shows that Shaukat was with another person at Srinagar, by name
Chotu (the alias name of Afzal, according to the prosecution) and that panic
and anxiety were writ large on the face of it. In the light of the above
discussion, can it be said that the circumstances established by satisfactory
evidence are so clinching and unerring so as to lead to a conclusion,
unaffected by reasonable doubt, that the appellant Shaukat was a party to the
conspiracy along with his cousin Afzal? We find that there is no sufficient
evidence to hold him guilty of criminal conspiracy to attack the Parliament.
The gaps are many, once the confession is excluded. To recapitulate, the
important circumstances against him are: 1. Taking a room on rent along with
Afzal at Christian Colony hostel into which Afzal inducted the terrorist
Mohammed about a month prior to the incident. Shaukat used to go there.
2. The motorcycle of Shaukat being found at Indira Vihar, one of the
hideouts of the terrorists which was hired by Afzal in the 1st week of December
2001.
3. His visits to Gandhi Vihar house which was also taken on rent by
Afzal in December 2001 to accommodate the terrorists and meeting Afzal there
quite often, as spoken to by PW34.
4. Accompanying Afzal and Mohammed for the purchase of motorcycle by
Afzal.
5. His frequent calls to Afzal especially on the date of attack,
6. His leaving Delhi to Srinagar on the date of attack itself in his
truck with Afzal who carried a mobile phone, laptop used by terrorists and cash
of Rs.10 lakhs.
7. The fear and anxiety with which he and his wife conversed over phone
on the night of following day.
These circumstances, without anything more, do not lead to the
conclusion that Shaukat was also a party to the conspiracy in association with
the deceased terrorists. The important missing link is that there was no
occasion on which Shaukat ever contacted any of the deceased terrorists on
phone. Shaukat was not shown to be moving with the deceased terrorists at any
time excepting that he used to go with Afzal to the Boys' hostel where Mohammed
was staying initially and he once accompanied Afzal and Mohammed to the mobile
phone shop. He did not accompany Afzal at the time of purchases of chemicals
etc. used for preparation of explosives and motor car used by terrorists to go
to Parliament House. In the absence of any evidence as regards the identity of
satellite phone numbers, the Court cannot presume that the calls were received
from a militant leader who is said to be the kingpin behind the operations. The
frequent calls and meetings between Shaukat and Afzal should be viewed in the
context of the fact that they were cousins. Though his inclination and
willingness to lend a helping hand to Afzal even to the extent of facilitating
him to flee away from Delhi to a safer place soon after the incident is evident
from his various acts and conduct, they are
not sufficient to establish his complicity in the conspiracy as such.
Certain false answers given by him in the course of examination under Section
313 are not adequate enough to make up the deficiency in the evidence relating
to conspiracy as far as Shaukat is concerned. At the same time, the reasonable
and irresistible inference that has to be drawn from the circumstances
established is that the appellant Shaukat had the knowledge of conspiracy and
the plans to attack the Parliament House. His close association with Afzal
during the crucial period, his visits to the hideouts to meet Afzal, which
implies awareness of the activities of Afzal, the last minute contacts between
him and Afzal and their immediate departure to Srinagar in Shaukat's truck with
the incriminating laptop and phone held by Afzal would certainly give rise to a
high degree of probability of knowledge on the part of Shaukat that his cousin
had conspired with others to attack the Parliament and to indulge in the
terrorist acts. He was aware of what was going on and he used to extend help to
Afzal whenever necessary. Having known about the plans of Afzal in
collaborating with terrorists, he refrained from informing the police or Magistrate
intending thereby or knowing it to be likely that such concealment on his part
will facilitate the waging of war. In this context, it is relevant to refer to
Section 39 Cr.P.C.:
39. Public to give information of certain offences7(1) Every person, aware
of the commission of, or of the intention of any other person to commit, any
offence punishable under any of the following Sections of the Indian Penal Code
(45 of 1860), namely:--
(i) Sections 121 to 126, both inclusive, and Section 130 (that is to say
offences against the State specified in Chapter VI of the said Code);
####BODY####5 ####BODY####5 ####BODY####5 ####BODY####5 shall, in the
absence of any reasonable excuse, the burden of proving which excuse shall lie
upon the person so aware, forthwith give information to the nearest Magistrate
or police officer of such commission or intention;
Thus, by his illegal omission to apprise the police or Magistrate of the
design of Afzal and other conspirators to attack the Parliament which is an act
of waging war, the appellant Shaukat has made himself liable for punishment for
the lesser offence under Section 123 IPC. If he had given the timely
information, the entire conspiracy would have been nipped in the bud. The fact
that there was no charge against him under this particular Section, does not,
in any way, result in prejudice to him because the charge of waging war and
other allied offences are the subject matter of charges. We are of the view
that the accused Shaukat is not in any way handicapped by the absence of charge
under Section 123 IPC. The case which he had to meet under Section 123 is no
different from the case relating to the major charges which he was confronted
with. In the face of the stand he had taken and his conduct even after the
attack, he could not have pleaded reasonable excuse for not passing on the
information. Viewed from any angle, the evidence on record justifies his
conviction under Section 123 IPC.
In the result, we find Shaukat Hussain Guru guilty under Section 123 IPC
and sentence him to the maximum period of imprisonment of 10 years (rigorous)
specified therein. He is also sentenced to pay a fine of Rs.25000/- failing
which he shall suffer R.I. for a further period of one year. The convictions
and sentences under all other provisions of law are set aside. His appeal is
allowed to this extent.
20. CASE OF S.A.R. GILANI
The High Court set aside the conviction of S.A.R. Gilani and
acquitted him of the various charges.
There is no evidence to the effect that Gilani was maintaining personal
or telephonic contacts with any of the deceased terrorists. There is no
evidence of any participative acts in connection with or in pursuance of the
conspiracy. He was not connected with the procurement of hideouts, chemicals
and other incriminating articles used by the terrorists. Speaking from the
point of view of probabilities and natural course of conduct there is no
apparent reason why Gilani would have been asked to join conspiracy. It is not
the case of the prosecution that he tendered any advice or gave important
tips/information relevant to the proposed attack on Parliament. None of the
circumstances would lead to an inference beyond reasonable doubt of Gilani's
involvement in the conspiracy. There is only the evidence of PW 45, the
landlord of Shaukat, that he had seen the deceased terrorists and Gilani
visiting the house of Shaukat two or three days prior to 13th December. We have
already discussed his evidence. His version of identification of visitors by
means of the photographs of the deceased terrorists was held to be incredible.
As regards Gilani, in the first instance, he frankly stated that he could not
identify the person who was sitting in the Special Cell i.e. Gilani, but, on a
leading question put by the Public Prosecutor, on the permission given by the
Court, PW 45 pointed out towards Gilani as the person that was in the Special
Cell. It is noted in the deposition that initially the witness stated that he
had not said so to the police about Gilani. In this state of evidence, no
reliance can be placed on the testimony of PW 45 in regard to the alleged
visits of Gilani to the house of Shaukat a few days prior to 13th December. The
High Court observed that in any case PW 45 did not state that he had seen
Gilani visiting the house of Shaukat in the company of five terrorists.
Therefore, the case of the prosecution that Gilani participated in the meetings
at Shaukat's place where the conspiracy was hatched does not stand
substantiated.
The High Court after holding that the disclosure statement of Gilani was
not admissible under Section 27 of the Evidence Act and that the confession of
co-accused cannot also be put against him, observed thus: "We are,
therefore, left with only one piece of evidence against accused S.A.R. Gilani
being the record of telephone calls between him and accused Mohd. Afzal and
Shaukat. This circumstance, in our opinion, do not even remotely, far less
definitely and unerringly point towards the guilt of accused S.A.R. Gilani. We,
therefore, conclude that the prosecution has failed to bring on record evidence
which cumulatively forms a chain, so complete that there is no escape from the
conclusion that in all human probabilities accused S.A.R. Gilani was involved
in the conspiracy."
The High Court concluded that "the evidence on record does not
bring out a high level of consciousness qua S.A.R. Gilani in the
conspiracy."
We are in agreement with the conclusion reached by the High Court.
However, we would like to enter into a further discussion on the incriminatory
circumstances which, according to the prosecution, would have bearing on the
guilt of the accused Gilani.
The fact that Gilani was in intimate terms with Shaukat and Afzal and
was conversing with them through his mobile phone No. 9810081228 frequently
between the first week of November and the date of the crucial incident is
sought to be projected by the prosecution prominently as an incriminating
circumstance against Gilani. Incidentally, it is also pointed out that there
were contemporaneous calls between Gilani, Afzal and Shaukat and Afzal and
Mohammed. It is particularly pointed out that after Shaukat acquired mobile
phone 9810446375, the first call was to Gilani on 2.11.2001 for 22 seconds.
Gilani in turn called him up and spoke for 13 seconds. Thereafter, there was
exchange of calls between Shaukat and Gilani on seven occasions in the month of
November. In the month of November, there was a call from Shaukat through his
phone No. 9811573506 to Gilani on 7th December, 2001 and on the 9th December,
2001, Gilani spoke to Shaukat for 38 seconds. There was a call on the midnight
of 13th December for 146 seconds from Gilani's number to Shaukat. There is a
controversy about this call which we shall refer to in the next para. Then,
soon after the attack on Parliament on 13th December, 2001, there was a call
from Shaukat to Gilani and thereafter from Gilani to Shaukat. As regards the
calls between Gilani and Afzal are concerned, the call records show that two
calls were exchanged between them in the morning of 12th November, 2001. Then,
Gilani called up Afzal on 17.11.2001 for 64 seconds and again on 7th December
& 9th December, 2001. It is pointed out that on the reactivation of the
telephone of Afzal i.e. ####BODY####589429 on 7.12.2001, Gilani spoke to Afzal
on the same day. The High Court observed that on the basis of these calls, it
is not possible to connect Gilani to the conspiracy, especially having regard
to the fact that Gilani was known to Shaukat and his cousin Afzal. Shaukat and
Gilani lived in the same locality i.e. Mukherjee Nagar. It is not in dispute
that Gilani played a part at the marriage ceremony of Shaukat (A2) and Afsan
Guru (A4) in the year 2000. It is also not in dispute that they hail from the
same District and were the students of Delhi University. The calls between them
do not give a definite pointer of Gilani's involvement in the conspiracy to
attack the Parliament. As far as the calls between Afzal and Gilani are concerned,
there was no call too close to the date of incident. One call was on 7th
December, 2001 and another was on 9th December, 2001. On the date of incident,
there was exchange of calls between Shaukat and Gilani twice about half-an-hour
after the incident. Not much of importance can be attached to this, as it is
not unusual for friends talking about this extraordinary event. The phone calls
between these three persons, if at all, would assume some importance if there
is other reliable and relevant evidence pointing out the accusing finger
against Gilani. That is lacking in the instant case. Gilani had invited problem
for himself by disowning the friendship with Shaukat and the contacts with
Afzal. In the course of examination under Section 313, he took the plea that
Shaukat was a mere acquaintance and he had not visited him. When asked
questions about the telephonic contacts giving the numbers thereof, Gilani
feigned ignorance of the telephone numbers of Shaukat and Afzal by giving
evasive answers - 'I do not remember'. Of course, a wrong question was also put
with reference to the calls at 11.19 and 11.32 hours on 13th which were between
Afzal and Shaukat as if Gilani had called them up at that time. Still, the fact
remains that he did give false answers probably in his over anxiety to wriggle
out of the situation. That does not make an otherwise innocuous factor on
incriminating circumstance.
There was a debate on the question whether the call from Gilani's number
to Shaukat's number at 00.41 hours on 12th December i.e. just on the eve of the
Parliament attack was made by Gilani. The call lasted for 146 seconds. The
defence of Gilani was that Gilani's brother called Shaukat to wish him on that
night which happened to be shab-e-qadr festival night and that it was not
unusual for the friends to exchange the greetings on that night. It is pointed
out by the learned counsel for the State that the testimony of DW57 Gilani's
wife, exposes the falsity of this defence. She stated that no one in the family
used cell phone that night. She stated that namaz was performed on the night of
12th December, by all the family members together from 9.30 p.m. onwards. It
was closed at 7.00 a.m. on 13th December, 2001 and then they slept. She further
stated that during namaz, her husband did not move out of the room nor talked
to anybody. She also stated that the cell phone was switched off and kept
aside. She denied that any call was made by her husband on the cell phone at
00.45 hours on the intervening night of 12th / 13th December, 2001. It was
contended before us that Gilani was not questioned on this point in his Section
313 examination. If a question was put, a clarification would have been given
that in fact, the brother of Gilani had contacted Shaukat to convey good
wishes. Comment was also made in regard to the role, assumed by the learned
trial Judge, of putting questions to DW5. Though it appears that DW5's evidence
is inconsistent with the defence version, as no specific question was put to
Gilani on this aspect, we are not inclined to go so far as to hold that it is
undoubtedly a false plea. Yet, it raises a grave suspicion that the accused was
trying to hide something which might turn out to be adverse to him. Even if
there was such a call on the 13th midnight between Shaukat and Gilani, undue
importance ought not to be attached to this fact, having regard to the state of
other circumstantial evidence on record.
Then, the prosecution relied on the evidence of PW39 who is the landlord
of Gilani. He merely stated in general terms that he had seen Shaukat and Afzal
visiting the house of Gilani two or three times during the period Gilani stayed
in his house i.e. during a period of more than two years. PW39 did not say
anything about visits of Afzal or Shaukat a few days or weeks before the
incident.
Then, the prosecution relied on the disclosure statement7Ext.PW66/13 to
establish that Gilani was well aware of the names of the deceased terrorists,
the change of hideouts by Afzal and the material such as police uniforms which
were procured for the purpose of conspiracy. It is contended that the relevant
portions in the disclosure statement amount to informations leading to the
discovery of facts within the meaning of Section 27 of the Evidence Act.
According to the learned counsel for the State Mr. Gopal Subramnium, the
statement of Mr. Gilani disclosing the names of five deceased terrorists who
had come from Pakistan, Shaukat taking a room on rent for Mohammed in Christian
Colony and the terrorists securing explosives, mobile phones and police
uniforms are all admissible inasmuch as these facts led the investigating
agencies to further investigations which confirmed the information furnished by
Gilani. In this connection, we may recapitulate the contention of the learned
counsel that Section 27 rests on the principle of confirmation by subsequent
events and that the facts discovered need not necessarily relate to material
objects. We have already discussed the legal position in regard to the scope
and parameters of Section 27 and we have not accepted the contention of the
learned counsel for the State. We are of the view that none of the statements
can be put against Gilani. It may be noted that Gilani was not taken to any
places such as the hideouts where the incriminating articles were found. He
only pointed out the house of Shaukat who was in the same locality on the 15th
December, 2001 which is an innocuous circumstance. Though there is some dispute
on this aspect, we are inclined to believe the evidence of the investigating
officers because Afsan Guru, in her statement under Section 313, stated that
Gilani was with the police when they came to her house. One more important
aspect that deserves mention is that there is nothing to show that the
information furnished by Gilani led to the discovery of facts such as
identification of the deceased terrorists, recovery of chemicals, police
uniforms etc., at the hideouts. That was all done on the basis of informations
furnished by other accused. There is no inextricable link between the alleged
informations furnished by Gilani and the facts discovered. None of the
investigating officers deposed to the effect that on the basis of information
furnished by Gilani, any incriminating articles were recovered or hideouts were
discovered. On the other hand, the evidence discloses the supervening
informations which led the I.Os. to discover the things.
The disclosure memo has also been assailed (Ext.PW66/13) on the ground
that the arrest of Gilani was manipulated and therefore no credence shall be
given to the police records. Whereas according to Gilani, the time of arrest
was at 1.30 p.m. on 14th December, 2001 while he was going in a bus, according
to the I.O., the arrest was effected at about 10 a.m. on 15th December, when he
was about to enter his house. Though the time of arrest at 10 a.m. does not
appear to be correct in view of the information which was already passed on to
Srinagar regarding the truck of Shaukat there are certain doubtful features in
the version of Gilani too that the arrest was effected on the afternoon of 14th
December, 2001. It is not necessary to delve into this question further for the
purpose of disposal of this appeal.
The last circumstance which needs to be discussed is about the
telephonic conversation between Gilani and his brother Shah Faizal on the 14th
December 2001 at 12.22 hours. His brother Shah Faizal examined as D.W. 6 6,
spoke from Baramullah/Srinagar, which was intercepted and recorded on tape, Ex.
P.W. 66/1, which conversation was admitted. The dispute is only about the
interpretation of certain words used in that phone conversation. The
conversation was in Kashmiri language, which was translated into Hindi by P.W.
6 71, a young man whose educational qualification was only V standard. As it
was an ordinary colloquial conversation, there is no difficulty in the speech
being translated by a less educated person. As against this translation, the
defense version of translation was given by D.Ws. 6 1 & 2. The relevant
portion of the speech as translated by P.W. 6 71 is as follows:
Caller: (Bother of Gilani) What have you done in Delhi?
Receiver: (Gilani) It is necessary to do (while laughing) ( Eh che
zururi).
Caller: Just maintain calm now.
Receiver: O.K. (while laughing)Where is Bashan?
This portion of the conversation appears almost towards the end of talk.
The defence version of translation is as follows:
Caller: (Brother of Gilani) What has happened? Receiver: (Gilani) What,
in Delhi?
Caller: What has happened in Delhi?
Receiver: Ha! Ha! Ha! (laughing)
Caller: Relax now.
Receiver: Ha! Ha! Ha!, O.K. Where are you in Srinagar?
The controversy is centered on the point, whether the words "Eh che
zururi" were used by Gilani or not. According to the prosecution these
words indicate the state of mind of Gilani in relation to the atrocious
incident in Delhi the previous day. The High Court commented thus in paragraph
346: "During the hearing of the appeal, we had called for the tape from
Malkhana and in the presence of the parties played the same. Indeed the voice
was so inaudible that we could not make head or tail of the conversation. We
tried our best to pick up the phonetical sounds where there was a dispute as to
what words were used, but were unable to do so. Testimony of PW 48 reveals that
he could not analyse the talk as it was highly inaudible. PW 48 is a phonetic
expert. If he could not comprehend the conversation in a clearly audible tone,
the probability of ordinary layman picking up the phonetic sounds differently
cannot be ruled out. The prosecution witness, PW 71, Rashid, who prepared a
transcript of the tape is fifth class pass and it was not his profession to
prepare transcript of taped conversation. The possibility of his being in error
cannot be ruled out. Benefit of doubt must go to the defence."
However the trial Court took the view that the translation by PW 71
appeared to be correct. The learned Counsel for the State submits that the High
Court should not have discarded this piece of evidence on the ground of
inaudibility, when two of the defence witnesses could hear and translate it.
However, the fact remains that the High Court was not able to make out the
words used nor the phonetic expert PW 48. Moreover, there are different
versions of translation. The defence version having been translated by persons
proficient in Kashmiri and Hindi, the view taken by the High Court seems to us
to be reasonable. At any rate, there is room for doubt. No doubt, as per the
deposition of DW 6, the brother of Gilani and the version of Gilani in his
statement under Section 313, the relevant query and answer was in the context
of quarrel between him and his wife with regard to the Kashmir trip during Eid
appears to be false in view of the tenor of the conversation. At the same time,
in view of the discrepant versions, on an overall consideration, we are not
inclined to disturb the finding of the High Court. However, we would like to
advert to one disturbing feature. Gilani rejoiced and laughed heartily when the
Delhi event was raised in the conversation. It raises a serious suspicion that
he was approving of the happenings in Delhi. Moreover, he came forward with a
false version that the remark was made in the context of domestic quarrel. We
can only say that his conduct, which is not only evident from this fact, but
also the untruthful pleas raised by him about his contacts with Shaukat and
Afzal, give rise to serious suspicion at least about his knowledge of the
incident and his tacit approval of it. At the same time, suspicion however
strong cannot take the place of legal proof. Though his conduct was not above
board, the Court cannot condemn him in the absence of sufficient evidence
pointing unmistakably to his guilt.
In view of the foregoing discussion we affirm the verdict of the High
Court and we uphold the acquittal of S.A.R. Gilani of all charges. 21. CASE OF
AFSAN GURU @ NAVJOT SANDHU
The trial Court convicted her of the offence under Section 123 IPC
imputing her the knowledge of conspiracy and concealing the evidence of design
to wage war by reason of her illegal omission to inform the police. The High
Court acquitted her of the charge. We are of the view that the High Court is
fully justified in doing so. The prosecution case against this accused, who is
the wife of Shaukat Hussain, is weak, especially, in the light of the exclusion
of confessional statements of co-accused 6 Shaukat and Afzal. The High Court
held the confessions inadmissible against the co-accused and we have expressed
the same view. Incidentally, we may mention that even the confessions of
co-accused do not attribute to her in clear terms the role of conspirator, though
on the basis of confessions it could perhaps be held that she was in the know
of things well before the planned attack on the Parliament. In fact, there was
no earthly reason for inviting her to join the conspiracy. She was pregnant by
then. Then it is to be noted that no recoveries were effected at her instance
coming within the purview of Section 27 of the Evidence Act as interpreted by
us and the High Court. Practically there is no evidence left to bring her
within the purview of Section 123 IPC much less within the net of conspiracy to
wage war and to commit terrorist act. Indisputably, no positive or
participatory role has been attributed to her and as rightly observed by the
High Court, "she provided no logistics; she procured no hideouts; she procured
no arms and ammunition; she was not even a motivator." She could have had
some knowledge of the suspicious movements of her husband with Afzal who is his
cousin and a surrendered militant. Of course, she was aware of the fact that
Shaukat accompanied by Afzal left in her truck on the day of Parliament attack
in post-haste; but, the involvement of Afzal, direct or indirect, and the
attitude of her husband in relation to the Parliament attack could have come to
her knowledge after the attack when they abruptly left for Srinagar in the
truck.
The prosecution sought to rely on her disclosure memo Ex. PW 66/14 but
nothing was recovered as a direct result of the information given by her. Of
course, as far as passing on the information regarding the truck by which
Shaukat left for Srinagar, there is no dispute. But the recovery of laptop etc.
from the truck is not distinctly relatable to the information contained in the
alleged disclosure statement. The articles in the truck were recovered at the
instance of Afzal and Shaukat when it was intercepted at Srinagar. We find no
link between the disclosure and the recoveries as a cause and effect.
The next piece of evidence relied against her is the telephonic
conversation she had with her husband Shaukat on the night of 14th December
which was taped. We have held that the High Court erred in doubting the
authenticity of the said intercepted conversation recorded on the tape. The
call was received by Afsan on the Phone No. 9811573506 and the caller was her
husband. The voice of both has been identified by the expert, as already noted.
The conversation reads thus:
14.12.2001
Time: 2013 hrs 9811573506
Caller: Hello I am! Was there any telephonic call?
(Shaukat)
Receiver: Shaukat where are you?
(Afsan)
Caller: I am in Srinagar.
Receiver: Reached there.
Caller: Yes.
Receiver: Some person had come just now.
Caller: From where?
Receiver: I don't know. Don't say anything.
Caller: O.K.
Receiver: I don't know they are with the lady of ground floor. Some
vehicle is still parked outside.
Caller: O.K.
Receiver: I don't know. I did not speak anything.
Caller: O.K. Alright.
Receiver: Tell more, don't speak anything now and tell me. I am much
afraid.
Caller: No, No nothing dear, O.K.
Receiver: Are you fine?
Caller: Yes, Yes.
Receiver: Reached safely?
Caller: Yes, Yes.
Receiver: And Chotu?
Caller: Yes, Yes.
Receiver: Do you know?
Caller: Yes, Yes alright you may make a call.
Receiver: When?
Caller: In the night right now. I am calling from outside
Receiver: Alright I will call up tomorrow (while weeping)
Caller: O.K.
As rightly observed by the High Court it shows that "Shaukat and
Afsan were talking between the lines. Afsan was scared." An inference can
be drawn that she was concerned about the safety of Shaukat and that she was
aware that Shaukat and Afzal did something that attracted police surveillance.
But from this circumstance alone, no inference can be drawn with a reasonable
degree of certainty that she was having knowledge of the plan to attack the
Parliament before it happened. The scanty evidence on record does not justify
her conviction either on the charges framed against her or under Section 123
IPC for which she was held guilty by the trial Court. The High Court's view is
unexceptionable.
22. IN THE RESULT, we dismiss the appeal filed by Mohd. Afzal and the
death sentence imposed upon him is hereby confirmed. The appeal of Shaukat is
allowed partly. He stands convicted under Section 123 IPC and sentenced to
undergo RI for 10 years and to pay a fine of Rs. 25,000/- and in default of
payment of fine he shall suffer RI for a further period of one year. His
conviction on other charges is hereby set aside. The appeals filed by the State
against the acquittal of S.A.R. Gilani and Afsan Guru are hereby dismissed.
No comments:
Post a Comment